Selected quad for the lemma: power_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
power_n according_a authority_n law_n 3,781 5 4.5737 4 false
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A62873 Saints no smiters, or, Smiting civil powers not the work of saints being a treatise, shewing the doctrine and atempts of Quinto-Monarchians, or, Fifth-Monarchy-Men about smiting powers, to be damnable and antichristian / by John Tombes ... Tombes, John, 1603?-1676. 1664 (1664) Wing T1816; ESTC R6979 110,523 126

There are 26 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

their_o subjection_n sure_a paul_n when_o he_o reason_v with_o felix_n act_v 24._o 25._o do_v nor_o go_v about_o to_o terrify_v he_o with_o threaten_v of_o any_o judgement_n he_o or_o the_o saint_n on_o earth_n have_v but_o mind_v he_o of_o the_o judgement_n to_o come_v nor_o do_v our_o lord_n christ_n himself_o either_o to_o pilate_n or_o the_o high_a priest_n use_v any_o menace_a speech_n but_o only_o tell_v the_o high_a priest_n matth._n 26._o 64._o hereafter_o you_o shall_v see_v the_o son_n of_o man_n sit_v on_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o power_n and_o come_v on_o the_o cloud_n of_o heaven_n 2._o this_o will_v nothing_o concern_v the_o king_n of_o these_o three_o nation_n nor_o any_o other_o king_n or_o ruler_n who_o do_v acknowledge_v they_o rule_v under_o christ_n and_o rule_n for_o christ_n and_o therefore_o can_v with_o any_o colour_n be_v adjudge_v as_o enemy_n to_o christ_n by_o those_o who_o have_v no_o cognizance_n of_o the_o secret_n of_o man_n heart_n nor_o any_o way_n or_o power_n of_o judicature_n in_o such_o thing_n but_o must_v leave_v they_o to_o the_o trial_n of_o the_o universal_a judge_n 3._o we_o grant_v that_o so_o far_o as_o christ_n have_v make_v any_o law_n pertain_v to_o civil_a or_o church_n government_n king_n have_v no_o power_n to_o abrogate_v or_o alter_v they_o but_o be_v bind_v according_a to_o that_o authority_n they_o have_v to_o see_v they_o execute_v and_o observe_v yea_o and_o to_o repress_v they_o that_o pretend_v themselves_o saint_n as_o traitor_n both_o to_o they_o and_o christ_n from_o who_o they_o have_v authority_n who_o appose_v their_o power_n and_o hinder_v their_o act_n in_o that_o which_o be_v agreeable_a to_o christ_n law_n for_o if_o they_o be_v not_o officer_n under_o christ_n as_o mediator_n which_o i_o assert_v not_o yet_o they_o be_v ruler_n under_o christ_n as_o the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o will_v be_v own_v and_o assist_v by_o he_o in_o do_v his_o work_n against_o any_o that_o pretend_v himself_o christ_n vicar_n or_o lurk_v under_o the_o vizour_n of_o a_o saint_n but_o as_o i_o say_v before_o sect._n 6._o 1._o the_o law_n of_o christ_n be_v not_o sufficient_a without_o other_o law_n to_o settle_v and_o order_v thousand_o of_o particular_n whether_o belong_v to_o the_o church_n or_o commonwealth_n but_o that_o there_o be_v need_n of_o humane_a law_n to_o determine_v they_o 2._o that_o the_o jewish_a law_n be_v not_o fit_v for_o the_o government_n of_o christian_a state_n and_o church_n of_o the_o gentile_n except_o in_o some_o few_o 3._o that_o the_o lord_n christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n do_v of_o purpose_n leave_v we_o at_o liberty_n concern_v they_o lest_o the_o gospel_n shall_v be_v hinder_v by_o they_o and_o permit_v all_o nation_n to_o order_v their_o own_o law_n and_o civil_a government_n according_a to_o general_a precept_n of_o the_o word_n and_o the_o exigence_n of_o civil_a affair_n 4._o that_o to_o tie_v man_n to_o moysaicall_a civil_a precept_n any_o further_a than_o the_o general_a equity_n of_o they_o require_v will_v be_v to_o judaize_v 5._o that_o the_o most_o holy_a saint_n that_o be_v on_o earth_n be_v and_o will_v be_v bind_v to_o observe_v humane_a law_n of_o their_o civil_a seperiors_n under_o pain_n of_o god_n wrath_n till_o christ_n at_o his_o come_n put_v down_o all_o rule_n and_o all_o authority_n and_o power_n 6._o that_o it_o no_o whit_n detract_v from_o christ_n supreme_a dominion_n to_o have_v king_n to_o be_v ruler_n under_o he_o and_o therefore_o we_o abhor_v that_o speech_n cite_v sect_n 2._o jesus_n christ_n alone_o be_v lord_n and_o king_n and_o all_o man_n be_v equal_n a_o four_o position_n deduce_v from_o the_o three_o be_v that_o the_o saint_n of_o the_o most_o high_a be_v by_o themselves_o a_o commonwealth_n and_o free-state_n which_o be_v somewhat_o like_o the_o opinion_n of_o papist_n who_o exempt_a man_n in_o holy_a order_n from_o the_o secular_a power_n and_o it_o be_v not_o unlikely_a to_o have_v be_v instill_v into_o the_o mind_n of_o quinto-monarchians_a by_o some_o of_o the_o popish_a party_n but_o be_v a_o false_a and_o foolish_a conceit_n refute_v by_o all_o the_o argument_n before_o produce_v require_v subjection_n to_o civil_a power_n even_o such_o as_o be_v evil_a and_o prove_v even_o agreeable_o to_o the_o state_n of_o mankind_n corrupt_a that_o civil_a power_n and_o natural_a power_n of_o government_n belong_v to_o infidel_n over_o saint_n and_o therefore_o saint_n can_v without_o injury_n shake_v off_o the_o yoke_n of_o allegiance_n and_o obedience_n which_o be_v upon_o they_o by_o the_o imposition_n of_o civil_a and_o natural_a power_n though_o unbeliever_n it_o be_v also_o foolish_a for_o 1._o it_o suppose_v saint_n may_v be_v by_o themselves_o which_o be_v contrary_a to_o the_o express_a doctrine_n of_o our_o lord_n matth._n 13._o 30._o which_o tell_v we_o that_o the_o tare_n and_o the_o wheat_n be_v to_o grow_v together_o until_o the_o harvest_n which_o he_o expound_v after_o v_o 40_o 41._o that_o it_o shall_v be_v the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n afore_o the_o wicked_a and_o the_o child_n of_o the_o kingdom_n shall_v be_v separate_v which_o he_o also_o teach_v by_o another_o parable_n v._n 47_o 48_o 49_o 50._o all_o those_o who_o be_v for_o gather_a church_n though_o they_o will_v have_v none_o in_o church_n communion_n but_o visible_a saint_n yet_o be_v force_v to_o acknowledge_v from_o these_o scripture_n that_o they_o must_v live_v together_o whether_o they_o will_v or_o no_o in_o the_o world_n and_o therefore_o this_o and_o indeed_o the_o whole_a project_n of_o the_o quinto-monarchians_a be_v but_o a_o fond_a dream_n and_o too_o like_o the_o donatist_n and_o circumcellion_n of_o old_a in_o africa_n but_o be_v it_o grant_v that_o there_o may_v be_v or_o have_v be_v plantation_n of_o godly_a person_n unmixed_a yet_o experience_n have_v show_v that_o even_o among_o they_o difference_n quick_o arise_v by_o reason_n of_o different_a apprehension_n and_o division_n and_o enmity_n and_o in_o a_o little_a time_n heat_n animosity_n faction_n opposition_n and_o other_o corruption_n follow_v beside_o who_o can_v secure_v the_o generation_n follow_v from_o corruption_n moses_n and_o joshuah_n settle_v the_o commonwealth_n of_o israel_n with_o order_n law_n rite_n of_o religion_n and_o all_o by_o immediate_a direction_n from_o god_n yet_o quick_o do_v they_o corrupt_v themselves_o the_o like_a may_v be_v say_v of_o the_o time_n succeed_v david_n and_o solomon_n our_o own_o time_n yield_v like_a instance_n that_o the_o posterity_n of_o the_o best_a and_o holy_a planter_n though_o free_a from_o many_o provocation_n which_o the_o people_n have_v from_o who_o they_o remove_v yet_o in_o a_o age_n do_v degenerate_a from_o their_o predecessor_n holiness_n and_o in_o their_o manner_n and_o government_n become_v like_o other_o people_n and_o what_o we_o have_v see_v in_o our_o day_n of_o the_o giddiness_n shallowness_n instability_n selfishness_n of_o the_o choice_a man_n for_o government_n and_o holiness_n who_o man_n can_v find_v in_o a_o nation_n shall_v i_o think_v awaken_v man_n from_o continue_v in_o that_o dream_n no_o better_a than_o the_o fancy_n of_o a_o golden_a mountain_n as_o if_o they_o may_v have_v a_o commonwealth_n or_o free-state_n or_o gather_v church_n by_o themselves_o on_o earth_n of_o pure_a saint_n 2._o but_o be_v this_o feasible_a that_o there_o be_v a_o commonwealth_n or_o free_a state_n of_o uncorrupt_a saint_n by_o themselves_o on_o earth_n afore_o christ_n appear_v yet_o without_o such_o promise_n and_o provision_n make_v for_o they_o by_o christ_n as_o we_o yet_o have_v no_o assurance_n of_o they_o will_v not_o subsist_v long_o but_o perhaps_o be_v as_o the_o historian_n phrase_n be_v populus_fw-la unius_fw-la aetatis_fw-la a_o people_n of_o one_o age_n by_o reason_n of_o the_o weakness_n they_o will_v have_v to_o resist_v their_o enemy_n which_o will_v be_v more_o in_o number_n than_o themselves_o perhaps_o a_o thousand_o fold_n and_o their_o enmity_n be_v increase_v as_o pharaoh_n be_v to_o the_o child_n of_o israel_n and_o either_o oppress_v they_o or_o destroy_v they_o if_o after_o the_o thousand_o year_n reign_v the_o devil_n can_v go_v out_o to_o deceive_v the_o nation_n which_o be_v in_o the_o four_o quarter_n of_o the_o earth_n gog_n and_o magog_n to_o gather_v they_o to_o battle_n their_o number_n be_v as_o the_o sand_n of_o the_o sea_n and_o they_o go_v up_o on_o the_o breadth_n of_o the_o earth_n and_o compass_v about_o the_o camp_n of_o the_o saint_n and_o the_o belove_a city_n rev._n 20._o 8_o 9_o it_o be_v much_o more_o likely_a while_o satan_n be_v at_o liberty_n and_o million_o of_o enemy_n infidel_n pagan_n cruel_a mahometan_n bloody_a papist_n profane_a and_o vicious_a protestant_n unquiet_a and_o unruly_a member_n in_o the_o gather_a church_n loose_a libertine_n and_o
insufficient_a rule_n to_o guide_v we_o to_o god_n about_o the_o oath_n of_o the_o king_n supremacy_n and_o allegiance_n to_o he_o and_o upon_o that_o occasion_n somewhat_o a_o ample_a treatise_n about_o swear_v assert_v that_o under_o the_o gospel_n there_o be_v yet_o a_o lawful_a use_n of_o swear_v be_v now_o debar_v of_o other_o ministerial_a employment_n i_o have_v conceive_v it_o a_o necessary_a work_n to_o show_v the_o weakness_n of_o those_o supposition_n upon_o which_o the_o quinto-monarchians_a have_v be_v draw_v to_o such_o a_o hideous_a practice_n as_o that_o accurse_a action_n foremention_v be_v §_o 2._o the_o word_n of_o quinto-monarchians_a express_v their_o opinion_n about_o seek_v christ_n kingdom_n in_o this_o age_n be_v recite_v there_o be_v a_o book_n print_v make_v in_o the_o year_n 1656._o as_o be_v note_v pag._n 18._o bear_v this_o title_n the_o banner_n of_o truth_n display_v or_o a_o testimony_n for_o christ_n and_o against_o antichrist_n be_v the_o substance_n of_o several_a consultation_n hold_v and_o keep_v by_o a_o certain_a number_n of_o christian_n who_o be_v wait_v for_o the_o visible_a appearance_n of_o christ_n kingdom_n in_o and_o over_o the_o world_n and_o reside_v in_o and_o about_o the_o city_n of_o london_n in_o the_o first_o page_n of_o the_o epistle_n dedicatory_a be_v these_o word_n and_o true_o it_o evident_o appear_v that_o rome_n and_o the_o nation_n of_o europe_n common_o call_v the_o protestant_n but_o be_v the_o antichristian_a country_n which_o be_v the_o street_n of_o the_o great_a city_n and_o rome-babylon_n be_v the_o akeldama_n or_o field_n of_o blood_n and_o some_o page_n after_o mention_v power_n since_o the_o rise_n of_o the_o beast_n with_o ten_o horn_n and_o ten_o crown_n and_o their_o success_n it_o be_v say_v now_o for_o that_o we_o apprehend_v that_o the_o present_a generation_n in_o which_o we_o live_v be_v that_o time_n in_o which_o this_o great_a work_n of_o reformation_n rend_v and_o tear_v the_o very_a foundation_n of_o the_o beast_n civil_a power_n up_o by_o the_o root_n the_o fall_n of_o the_o ten_o part_n of_o rome_n dominion_n a_o great_a slaughter_n among_o the_o great_a man_n and_o implacable_a enemy_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o final_a result_n the_o kingdom_n of_o the_o world_n become_v christ_n possession_n will_v begin_v and_o that_o time_n in_o which_o the_o first_o dispensation_n of_o our_o lord_n kingdom_n shall_v take_v place_n and_o that_o it_o shall_v not_o pass_v before_o these_o thing_n be_v fulfil_v therefore_o we_o be_v against_o these_o government_n as_o now_o constitute_v and_o grow_v upon_o the_o old_a root_n of_o wickedness_n and_o bitterness_n that_o time_n out_o of_o mind_n have_v bring_v forth_o and_o produce_v nothing_o but_o bloud-monster_n and_o to_o rule_v by_o those_o law_n that_o bastard_n tyrant_n and_o conqueror_n have_v make_v for_o their_o lust_n sake_n in_o opposition_n to_o the_o law_n and_o the_o testimony_n isaiah_n 8._o 20._o we_o can_v contend_v for_o any_o government_n whatsoever_o that_o be_v of_o man_n erect_v build_v and_o plant_v where_o any_o thing_n of_o this_o old_a foundation_n may_v remain_v and_o be_v leave_v and_o which_o good_a man_n moral_a man_n civil_a man_n may_v exercise_v upon_o a_o mere_o civil_a account_n for_o all_o man_n as_o they_o be_v man_n have_v lose_v their_o right_n and_o privilege_n in_o respect_n of_o government_n in_o the_o first_o adam_n but_o saint_n have_v regain_v they_o in_o the_o second_o adam_n or_o lord_n from_o heaven_n and_o by_o force_n and_o virtue_n of_o man_n law_n though_o but_o the_o best_a of_o those_o law_n &_o those_o call_v fundamental_a so_o they_o be_v where_o no_o more_o righteous_a be_v find_v for_o the_o lord_n will_v pluck_v up_o and_o destroy_v root_n and_o branch_n and_o the_o lord_n will_v not_o have_v a_o stone_n of_o babel_n confuse_a building_n for_o a_o corner_n nor_o a_o stone_n for_o a_o foundation_n we_o can_v therefore_o but_o as_o in_o duty_n by_o our_o allegiance_n to_o this_o king_n bind_v proclaim_v that_o jesus_n christ_n be_v the_o only_a lawful_a and_o true_a beget_v heir_n and_o lawful_a king_n and_o potentate_n of_o these_o three_o nation_n and_o of_o all_o the_o nation_n of_o the_o earth_n and_o as_o he_o be_v the_o seed_n of_o abraham_n shall_v possess_v the_o earth_n yea_o and_o the_o very_a gate_n of_o his_o enemy_n and_o that_o the_o sole_a legislative_a power_n of_o the_o nation_n be_v and_o do_v of_o right_o appertain_v and_o belong_v to_o he_o and_o shall_v be_v exercise_v by_o he_o dan._n 7._o 27._o jer._n 10._o 7._o isa._n 9_o 6_o 7._o gal._n 3._o 16._o etc._n etc._n hence_o than_o it_o necessary_o follow_v that_o those_o beastlike_a power_n now_o in_o be_v in_o the_o world_n and_o those_o if_o any_o which_o shall_v succeed_v upon_o that_o bottom_n that_o rebel-like_a will_v not_o assign_v their_o say_a power_n crown_n and_o sceptre_n to_o this_o great_a monarch_n be_v and_o shall_v be_v deem_v and_o adjudge_v traitor_n and_o proceed_v against_o according_o by_o virtue_n of_o this_o king_n law_n and_o true_o we_o be_v sober_o and_o humble_o bold_a in_o the_o lord_n jehovah_n strength_n to_o assert_v that_o the_o saint_n of_o the_o most_o high_a be_v they_o who_o or_o where_o they_o will_v and_o faithful_a remnant_n be_v a_o people_n distinct_a from_o the_o world_n and_o formal_a professor_n and_o be_v but_o pilgrim_n and_o stranger_n in_o this_o state_n of_o affair_n man_n of_o another_o kingdom_n and_o world_n and_o be_v by_o themselves_o a_o commonwealth_n and_o free-state_n and_o therefore_o it_o be_v to_o be_v desire_v from_o good_a and_o sound_a ground_n that_o they_o will_v exercise_v that_o royal_a authority_n which_o god_n have_v give_v unto_o they_o and_o invest_v they_o with_o as_o they_o be_v saint_n by_o call_v and_o upon_o this_o account_n we_o humble_o conceive_v that_o it_o be_v lawful_a for_o they_o to_o use_v all_o honest_a and_o just_a mean_n to_o defend_v themselves_o and_o offend_v their_o enemy_n and_o to_o contend_v against_o those_o that_o do_v or_o shall_v oppose_v they_o in_o their_o work_n and_o business_n which_o be_v according_a to_o the_o pattern_n show_v unto_o they_o in_o the_o mount_n and_o law_n of_o christ_n ordain_v and_o declare_v throughout_o the_o scripture_n it_o be_v observable_a that_o we_o be_v even_o already_o arrive_v the_o overturning_a day_n we_o mean_v those_o time_n in_o which_o god_n will_v begin_v to_o smite_v the_o government_n and_o power_n of_o the_o great_a image_n which_o be_v a_o little_a after_o express_v thus_o the_o total_a annihilation_n and_o subversion_n of_o all_o the_o power_n of_o this_o world_n of_o what_o quality_n soever_o rule_v either_o in_o antichrist_n earth_n or_o civil_a state_n or_o in_o his_o heaven_n or_o christ-state_n by_o the_o first_o dispensation_n of_o christ_n visible_a kingdom_n which_o we_o have_v speak_v of_o or_o that_o of_o the_o stone_n hence_o it_o be_v that_o we_o bear_v a_o constant_a and_o public_a testimony_n against_o power_n as_o the_o subject_n of_o god_n displeasure_n and_o that_o which_o must_v be_v pluck_v up_o we_o expect_v the_o gentile_a saint_n shall_v begin_v this_o great_a work_n in_o the_o book_n itself_o have_v p._n 1._o say_v they_o be_v resolve_v to_o proceed_v in_o their_o way_n of_o consultation_n for_o the_o clear_n up_o these_o matter_n of_o their_o faith_n and_o principle_n of_o their_o hope_n they_o thus_o write_v that_o there_o be_v oppression_n in_o the_o earth_n in_o all_o nation_n as_o also_o in_o england_n at_o this_o present_a time_n be_v undeniable_a for_o no_o man_n can_v say_v that_o there_o be_v no_o oppression_n unless_o we_o will_v also_o affirm_v that_o there_o be_v no_o dragon_n in_o power_n no_o antichrist_n beast_n babylon_n whore_n nor_o false_a prophet_n which_o how_o absurd_a a_o thing_n it_o be_v let_v all_o judge_n but_o the_o man_n of_o sin_n be_v still_o in_o the_o seat_n of_o authority_n &_o the_o government_n of_o these_o nation_n be_v antichristian_a therefore_o oppression_n be_v not_o cease_v neither_o will_v there_o be_v any_o last_a cessation_n of_o cruelty_n until_o the_o five_o kingdom_n be_v set_v up_o when_o the_o whole_a earth_n shall_v be_v at_o rest_n and_o the_o four_o kingdom_n which_o divide_v itself_o into_o two_o iron_n leg_n ten_o toe_n and_o a_o little_a horn_n be_v whole_o destroy_v in_o all_o the_o law_n constitution_n government_n and_o relic_n thereof_o for_o the_o spirit_n and_o life_n that_o be_v in_o that_o beast_n or_o kingdom_n be_v the_o spirit_n of_o the_o old_a dragon_n who_o be_v the_o devil_n and_o satan_n that_o old_a serpent_n who_o seed_n do_v continual_o war_v against_o the_o woman_n which_o be_v christ_n mystical_a body_n there_o be_v great_a enmity_n between_o they_o two_o p._n 4._o that_o dispensation_n which_o jehovah_n by_o his_o
providence_n have_v cast_v we_o under_o be_v the_o overturning_a dispensation_n the_o time_n of_o war_n and_o beat_v of_o ploughshare_n into_o sword_n which_o christ_n and_o the_o scripture_n speak_v of_o that_o day_n in_o which_o christ_n will_v appear_v in_o his_o stone_n the_o stone_n of_o israel_n against_o the_o power_n of_o the_o world_n to_o the_o end_n he_o may_v be_v invest_v in_o his_o possession_n which_o be_v the_o kingdom_n and_o dominion_n and_o their_o greatness_n under_o the_o whole_a heaven_n and_o therefore_o we_o conclude_v that_o it_o be_v a_o unlawful_a thing_n and_o therefore_o man_n ought_v not_o to_o contribute_v to_o the_o uphold_v and_o maintain_v of_o those_o power_n which_o shall_v be_v break_v by_o this_o dispensation_n leave_v happy_o they_o be_v find_v fighter_n against_o god_n p._n 6._o the_o will_n of_o man_n have_v be_v corrupt_v ever_o since_o the_o fall_n of_o man_n the_o law_n that_o proceed_v from_o that_o will_n must_v need_v be_v so_o p._n 11._o we_o say_v the_o oppressor_n which_o make_v we_o to_o groan_n be_v babylon_n in_o her_o several_a part_n and_o power_n in_o england_n ruler_n lawyer_n priest_n and_o soldier_n for_o the_o present_a government_n in_o england_n must_v of_o necessity_n be_v confess_v to_o be_v either_o a_o part_n of_o the_o ten_o horn_n of_o the_o ravenous_a four_o beast_n or_o else_o that_o wicked_a little_a horn_n dan._n 7._o because_o they_o be_v the_o last_o evil_a power_n that_o shall_v be_v over_o the_o nation_n of_o europe_n and_o therefore_o we_o may_v safe_o conclude_v this_o to_o be_v a_o assyrian_a else_o we_o must_v conclude_v he_o to_o be_v a_o part_n of_o that_o kingdom_n set_v up_o by_o the_o god_n of_o heaven_n but_o that_o can_v be_v because_o he_o rule_v by_o the_o law_n of_o his_o predecessor_n and_o shall_v christ_n be_v behold_v to_o antichrist_n for_o law_n no_o certain_o he_o be_v of_o the_o four_o and_o therefore_o we_o need_v not_o run_v far_o to_o look_v this_o oppressor_n have_v already_o find_v he_o to_o be_v the_o present_a government_n with_o its_o dependent_n and_o appurtenance_n be_v a_o piece_n of_o that_o monstrous_a beast_n who_o the_o dragon_n i._n e._n the_o devil_n revel_v 20._o 2._o assign_v power_n and_o seat_n and_o great_a authority_n unto_o who_o branch_n himself_o into_o so_o many_o monarchical_a government_n in_o the_o nation_n of_o europe_n and_o which_o man_n will_v persuade_v we_o to_o submit_v to_o as_o be_v lawful_a and_o of_o god_n but_o they_o execute_v the_o law_n of_o antichrist_n and_o rule_v for_o he_o in_o tyranny_n oppression_n and_o persecution_n by_o politic_a law_n which_o they_o make_v and_o for_o which_o the_o priest_n and_o lawyer_n plead_v and_o mercenary_a soldier_n and_o officer_n execute_v p._n 12._o the_o person_n oppress_v we_o take_v it_o be_v the_o most_o spiritual_a enlighten_v saint_n in_o these_o nation_n who_o spirit_n and_o affection_n be_v stir_v up_o to_o follow_v christ_n in_o the_o work_n of_o the_o generation_n the_o good_a interest_n now_o contend_v for_o who_o we_o call_v the_o generation_n of_o public_a spirit_a saint_n the_o administration_n of_o christ_n visible_a kingdom_n and_o rule_n over_o the_o nation_n be_v endeavour_v to_o be_v suppress_v in_o this_o juncture_n of_o time_n and_o not_o only_o the_o thing_n itself_o be_v oppose_v as_o dangerous_a and_o endeavour_v by_o matchiavil_n principle_n argument_n and_o power_n as_o heretical_a as_o monstrous_a but_o the_o doctrine_n and_o gospel_n of_o that_o kingdom_n and_o office_n of_o christ_n which_o shall_v be_v preach_v for_o a_o witness_n to_o all_o nation_n be_v slight_v and_o reject_v by_o self-interested_n man_n and_o contemn_v by_o most_o p._n 13._o they_o have_v make_v a_o law_n that_o those_o that_o shall_v speak_v against_o the_o power_n must_v be_v traitor_n which_o in_o effect_n be_v to_o make_v those_o traitor_n that_o speak_v for_o this_o kingdom_n the_o conversion_n of_o the_o gentile_n and_o poor_a ignorant_a sinner_n to_o the_o faith_n of_o christ_n visible_a kingdom_n be_v oppose_v and_o p._n 14_o the_o establishment_n of_o justice_n and_o righteousness_n in_o the_o world_n and_o therefore_o with_o we_o arise_v for_o the_o lot_n of_o our_o inheritance_n prepare_v therefore_o your_o victual_n your_o purse_n and_o your_o scrip_n but_o especial_o your_o sword_n though_o you_o sell_v your_o coat_n for_o it_o p._n 23._o the_o parliament_n as_o be_v build_v upon_o the_o old_a foundation_n be_v a_o part_n of_o the_o beast_n p._n 24._o it_o be_v clear_a that_o the_o dispensation_n of_o the_o stone_n shall_v begin_v to_o smite_v the_o power_n of_o the_o beast_n or_o civil_a power_n and_o that_o quarrel_n be_v begin_v and_o take_v up_o and_o continue_v chief_o against_o that_o power_n p._n 25._o find_a to_o be_v from_o hell_n and_o not_o from_o heaven_n p._n 27._o the_o glass_n of_o the_o beast_n power_n be_v almost_o run_v out_o in_o these_o nation_n what_o remain_v but_o that_o the_o saint_n take_v into_o their_o own_o possession_n the_o kingdom_n and_o power_n which_o be_v their_o birthright_n as_o freeman_n of_o the_o commonwealth_n of_o israel_n and_o heir_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n with_o christ_n gal._n 3._o 29._o which_o the_o beast_n and_o his_o power_n have_v unjust_o detain_v from_o they_o some_o hundred_o of_o year_n p._n 28._o that_o the_o work_n of_o this_o stone_n be_v a_o smite_v work_n or_o a_o work_n wherein_o the_o saint_n employ_v shall_v visible_o appear_v in_o a_o military_a posture_n for_o christ_n which_o we_o call_v the_o great_a combat_n between_o christ_n and_o the_o king_n and_o ruler_n of_o the_o world_n for_o the_o saint_n shall_v fall_v upon_o or_o smite_v that_o great_a image_n the_o foot_n and_o toe_n thereof_o and_o the_o whole_a roman_a monarchy_n as_o now_o divide_v or_o all_o those_o power_n who_o derivation_n be_v from_o rome_n other_o not_o except_v nor_o free_v shall_v be_v thereby_o smite_v we_o mean_v the_o kingdom_n of_o the_o romish_a iron-leg_n or_o the_o roman_a kingdom_n divide_v into_o the_o eastern_a and_o western_a monarchy_n wherein_o the_o whole_a dominion_n power_n and_o monarchy_n of_o the_o ottoman_a family_n or_o that_o of_o the_o turk_n be_v comprehend_v and_o the_o beast_n ten_o horn_n or_o antichrist_n civil_a power_n equivalent_a to_o the_o ten_o toe_n and_o also_o the_o little_a horn_n together_o with_o all_o power_n whatsoever_o that_o shall_v be_v find_v opposer_n of_o the_o lord_n kingdom_n whether_o they_o be_v of_o the_o golden_a babylonish_n silver_n persian_a brazen_a grecian_a or_o iron_n roman_n dan._n 2._o and_o ch_n 7._o revel_v 13._o ch_z 17._o so_o that_o we_o comprehend_v the_o whole_a kingdom_n of_o antichrist_n in_o the_o civil_a ecclesiastical_a part_n thereof_o make_v up_o of_o person_n and_o thing_n p._n 29._o the_o five_o kingdom_n which_o be_v christ_n with_o its_o holy_a just_a and_o righteous_a law_n and_o officer_n must_v arise_v with_o destruction_n to_o and_o stand_v up_o in_o place_n of_o the_o four_o kingdom_n and_o the_o law_n and_o officer_n thereof_o p._n 30._o because_o it_o be_v the_o purchase_n of_o the_o blood_n and_o death_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ._n p._n 15._o now_o than_o we_o say_v that_o call_v the_o ordinance_n of_o god_n prove_v the_o ordinance_n of_o the_o devil_n and_o though_o the_o power_n of_o the_o great_a image_n may_v be_v take_v for_o the_o ordinance_n of_o god_n so_o long_o as_o they_o keep_v their_o pure_a civil_a and_o unmixed_a state_n so_o say_v paul_n the_o power_n that_o be_v i._n e._n the_o civil_a power_n of_o old_a rome_n though_o a_o bloody_a persecutor_n and_o devourer_n of_o the_o creation_n and_o good_a heritage_n be_v ordain_v of_o god_n yet_o when_o the_o power_n of_o rome_n adulterate_v from_o its_o pure_a civil_a state_n and_o become_v a_o mix_a antichristian_a state_n the_o beast_n and_o a_o whore_n then_o it_o be_v say_v of_o that_o beastly_a antichristian_a power_n that_o the_o dragon_n or_o satan_n give_v he_o his_o power_n and_o seat_n and_o great_a authority_n and_o what_o then_o be_v this_o save_v the_o ordinance_n of_o hell_n god_n have_v reveal_v this_o by_o his_o spirit_n from_o his_o word_n unto_o a_o little_a remnant_n who_o see_v the_o rottenness_n and_o hellish_a foundation_n of_o all_o the_o civil_a power_n of_o the_o beast_n and_o how_o great_a a_o argument_n be_v this_o also_o to_o we_o that_o the_o rise_v and_o work_v of_o the_o stone_n be_v near_a which_o be_v principal_o against_o the_o civil_a power_n p._n 52._o it_o be_v certain_a that_o it_o be_v a_o duty_n in_o saint_n to_o hate_v god_n enemy_n yea_o and_o more_o particular_o to_o hate_v the_o civil_a or_o beastlike_a power_n because_o it_o be_v that_o which_o uphold_v the_o great_a whore_n and_o be_v a_o fighter_n against_o christ_n kingly_a office_n even_o with_o a_o perfect_a
and_o qualify_a a_o man_n how_o carnal_a soever_o to_o be_v a_o preacher_n of_o the_o gospel_n as_o they_o say_v and_o this_o together_o with_o the_o offer_n of_o some_o large_a stipend_n or_o yearly_a salary_n and_o fat_a benefice_n be_v their_o call_n to_o preach_v therefore_o we_o disow_v and_o abominate_a their_o qualification_n and_o their_o call_n as_o a_o accurse_a thing_n yet_o mistake_v we_o not_o we_o be_v not_o against_o humane_a learning_n and_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o language_n but_o do_v repute_v it_o honourable_a good_a and_o commendable_a yet_o when_o it_o be_v abuse_v and_o the_o plea_n of_o necessity_n put_v upon_o it_o in_o that_o habit_n we_o utter_o declaim_v against_o it_o as_o a_o derogation_n to_o the_o holy_a spirit_n and_o its_o office_n who_o give_v out_o the_o scripture_n and_o imprint_n they_o in_o the_o heart_n of_o the_o godly_a for_o all_o scripture_n be_v give_v by_o the_o inspiration_n of_o god_n and_o can_v be_v convince_o and_o profitable_o expound_v by_o man_n art_n and_o learning_n p._n 77._o separation_n be_v to_o be_v from_o the_o parochial_a church_n and_o hireling_n ministry_n of_o england_n their_o ordination_n and_o institution_n after_o they_o have_v for_o some_o time_n be_v train_v up_o in_o the_o art_n and_o science_n of_o egypt_n in_o the_o university_n they_o take_v their_o several_a degree_n and_o commencement_n master_n of_o art_n bachelor_n of_o divinity_n or_o godliness_n and_o in_o case_n they_o sit_v long_o under_o the_o skirt_n of_o the_o great_a whore_n she_o make_v they_o doctor_n in_o divinity_n man_n skilful_a and_o perfect_a in_o heavenly_a mystery_n these_o be_v those_o that_o during_o the_o defection_n and_o apostasy_n be_v the_o rabbi_n which_o look_v more_o after_o the_o fleece_n than_o the_o sheep_n lording_n it_o over_o god_n heritage_n we_o therefore_o be_v against_o those_o degree_n office_n place_n and_o their_o vain_a which_o be_v indeed_o blasphemous_a title_n which_o they_o arrogate_v from_o god_n and_o jesus_n christ_n the_o great_a prophet_n and_o teacher_n of_o his_o people_n gal._n 1._o 1._o matth._n 23._o 8._o joh._n 3_o 9_o 10._o rev._n 1._o 9_o p_o 79._o the_o enlighten_v saint_n or_o the_o more_o pure_a and_o holy_a part_n of_o those_o call_v the_o gather_v and_o which_o be_v corrupt_v church_n in_o these_o nation_n or_o elsewhere_o aught_o to_o separate_v and_o withdraw_v from_o the_o more_o gross_a dark_a defile_v and_o corrupt_a part_n of_o the_o say_a church_n because_o there_o be_v no_o church_n or_o at_o leastwise_o very_a few_o of_o the_o pastoral_a way_n in_o these_o nation_n or_o elsewhere_o but_o have_v something_o of_o antichrist_n in_o they_o have_v forsake_v &_o apostatise_v from_o the_o primative_a and_o first_o love_n and_o have_v and_o do_v in_o many_o principle_n &_o practice_n strike_v hand_n with_o the_o interest_n of_o antichrist_n and_o mystery_n of_o iniquity_n 2_o thes._n 2_o 3_o 4._o p._n 83._o our_o position_n we_o give_v thus_o that_o in_o this_o end_a time_n of_o the_o mystical_a number_n wherein_o the_o stone_n shall_v arise_v the_o saint_n must_v disow_v and_o in_o the_o strength_n of_o god_n separate_v from_o and_o according_a to_o that_o power_n which_o god_n shall_v give_v unto_o they_o by_o his_o spirit_n engage_v against_o all_o and_o all_o manner_n of_o civil_a power_n of_o what_o quality_n soever_o now_o lift_v up_o over_o the_o whole_a earth_n or_o any_o part_n kingdom_n nation_n or_o corner_n thereof_o together_o with_o all_o its_o dependent_n upholder_n law_n and_o appurtenance_n whatsoever_o who_o derivation_n have_v be_v from_o satan_n rule_v in_o all_o the_o several_a part_n power_n and_o form_n of_o the_o devour_a four_o beast_n and_o which_o be_v of_o and_o belong_v to_o that_o beast_n though_o descend_v into_o the_o very_o low_a last_o and_o most_o refine_a and_o pretend_a christian-like_a power_n of_o that_o beast_n as_o have_v their_o root_n and_o foundation_n upon_o satan_n the_o great_a dragon_n p._n 81_o 82._o we_o account_v it_o a_o duty_n for_o the_o saint_n to_o separate_v from_o all_o the_o form_n practice_n doctrine_n and_o spirit_n of_o the_o antichrist_n in_o the_o world_n in_o their_o brother_n in_o the_o church_n etc._n etc._n and_o to_o be_v plain_a we_o account_v he_o and_o that_o spirit_n which_o either_o in_o act_n or_o deed_n wilful_o and_o obstinate_o deny_v the_o smite_v work_n of_o our_o lord_n kingdom_n antichristian_a inasmuch_o as_o that_o such_o will_v always_o have_v christ_n his_o saint_n his_o cause_n in_o and_o on_o the_o earth_n a_o sufferer_n but_o the_o scripture_n clear_o manifest_v the_o contrary_a agreeable_o to_o these_o position_n or_o rather_o exceed_v they_o be_v the_o speech_n of_o some_o whether_o leveller_n or_o quinto-monarchians_a in_o the_o first_o and_o second_o part_n of_o pamphlet_n print_v 1648_o 1649._o p._n 1._o the_o creature_n man_n be_v privilege_v with_o be_v lord_n over_o other_o inferior_a creature_n but_o not_o over_o his_o own_o kind_n for_o all_o man_n be_v alike_o privilege_v by_o birth_n so_o all_o man_n be_v to_o enjoy_v the_o creature_n alike_o without_o propriety_n one_o more_o than_o another_o p._n 3._o the_o beast_n have_v its_o power_n from_o the_o dragon_n revel_v 13._o 4._o and_o the_o dragon_n revel_v 20._o 2._o be_v the_o devil_n so_o that_o it_o be_v plain_a that_o king_n be_v of_o the_o beast_n and_o the_o beast_n be_v of_o the_o devil_n and_o it_o be_v as_o plain_a they_o that_o worship_v the_o king_n worship_v the_o beast_n and_o they_o that_o worship_v the_o beast_n worship_v the_o devil_n revel_v 13._o 4._o now_o let_v we_o a_o little_a behold_v our_o english_a power_n all_o that_o which_o be_v call_v magistracy_n be_v from_o the_o king_n patent_n and_o his_o be_v from_o the_o devil_n for_o the_o king_n predecessor_n the_o outlandish_a bastard_n william_n come_v to_o be_v king_n by_o conquest_n and_o murder_n now_o murderer_n be_v say_v jesus_n the_o devil_n child_n for_o say_v he_o the_o devil_n be_v a_o murderer_n from_o the_o beginning_n and_o he_o abide_v not_o in_o the_o truth_n now_o king_n be_v utter_o against_o the_o truth_n and_o persecutor_n of_o the_o saint_n for_o say_v jesus_n they_o shall_v bring_v you_o before_o king_n so_o that_o king_n be_v enemy_n unto_o the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n take_z licenses_fw-la and_o grant_v patent_n and_o charter_n from_o the_o king_n be_v take_v the_o beast_n mark_v p._n 8._o we_o take_v this_o power_n of_o william_n the_o conqueror_n to_o be_v that_o little_a horn_n in_o dan._n 7._o 24._o p._n 13._o king_n lord_n and_o commons_z the_o little_a horn._n part._n 2._o p._n 5._o title_n of_o honour_n be_v term_v vain_a title_n forbid_v by_o our_o saviour_n as_o heathenish_a although_o some_o good_a man_n be_v king_n yet_o it_o be_v not_o in_o regard_n to_o their_o office_n but_o person_n for_o in_o that_o they_o be_v king_n they_o be_v tyrant_n p._n 6._o it_o be_v wickedness_n in_o the_o israelite_n in_o advance_v a_o man_n one_o of_o their_o own_o kind_n in_o the_o place_n of_o a_o god_n and_o so_o to_o idolise_v their_o own_o flesh_n above_o god_n p._n 7._o king_n be_v the_o worst_a of_o man_n p._n 8._o lawyer_n be_v worse_o than_o the_o devil_n who_o scorn_v to_o take_v a_o penny_n fee_n to_o torment_v any_o but_o will_v do_v it_o free_o p._n 9_o pharaoh-like_a they_o have_v their_o juggler_n who_o can_v play_v the_o hocus_n pocus_fw-la and_o invent_v a_o thing_n they_o call_v religion_n like_o jereboam_n calf_n who_o the_o first_o invent_v state_n worship_n p._n 10._o all_o those_o oppressor_n before_o name_v do_v live_v altogether_o out_o of_o god_n way_n and_o in_o rebellion_n to_o his_o law_n first_o because_o they_o live_v without_o a_o calling_n and_o so_o be_v idle_a be_v vagabond_n and_o waster_n of_o the_o creature_n by_o drunkenness_n pride_n gluttony_n and_o so_o but_o vermin_n in_o a_o commonwealth_n and_o by_o their_o own_o law_n ought_v to_o be_v put_v into_o a_o house_n of_o correction_n and_o to_o be_v make_v work_n jesus_n christ_n alone_o be_v lord_n and_o king_n over_o man_n and_o all_o man_n be_v equal_n p._n 11._o all_o man_n be_v to_o enjoy_v alike_o freedom_n and_o none_o more_o than_o another_o so_o that_o they_o be_v equal_a and_o none_o have_v to_o do_v to_o command_v another_o no_o more_o than_o another_o he_o but_o in_o a_o joint_a union_n and_o agreement_n that_o any_o be_v set_v up_o it_o be_v but_o a_o trust_v humane_a power_n and_o they_o but_o servant_n to_o the_o whole_a and_o may_v be_v remove_v at_o pleasure_n p._n 13._o there_o be_v vice-king_n viz._n those_o that_o be_v deputy_n as_o mayor_n in_o city_n and_o town_n corporate_a that_o be_v king_n of_o patent_n which_o patent_n be_v mere_a monopoly_n and_o serve_v to_o enhance_v trading_n and_o commodity_n in_o a_o
called_z ch_z 8._o 10._o the_o host_n of_o heaven_n v._n 24._o the_o holy_a people_n or_o people_n of_o the_o holy_a one_o ch_z 9_o 15_o 16_o 19_o 24._o god_n people_n and_o their_o city_n jerusalem_n call_v by_o god_n name_n his_o sanctuary_n the_o holy_a city_n ch_n 11._o 28._o 30._o the_o holy_a covenant_n ch_n 12._o 7._o the_o holy_a people_n yea_o sundry_a of_o those_o that_o be_v much_o follow_v in_o this_o argument_n as_o mr._n mede_n comment_fw-fr on_o revel_v 16._o 12._o do_v conceive_v that_o by_o the_o king_n of_o the_o east_n who_o shall_v have_v their_o way_n prepare_v for_o expedition_n against_o the_o beast_n be_v mean_v the_o jew_n and_o sundry_a prophecy_n there_o be_v in_o the_o old_a and_o new_a testament_n which_o do_v seem_v to_o foretell_v the_o kingdom_n to_o be_v restore_v to_o israel_n according_a to_o the_o question_n act_v 1._o 6._o and_o therefore_o the_o more_o likely_a when_o they_o be_v convert_v to_o christ_n if_o any_o saint_n on_o earth_n to_o be_v chief_a instrument_n of_o destroy_a babylon_n which_o have_v oppress_v they_o or_o that_o four_o kingdom_n which_o have_v be_v as_o strong_a as_o iron_n and_o break_v in_o piece_n and_o subdue_v all_o 9_o it_o be_v suppose_v that_o this_o smite_v work_n be_v the_o work_n of_o this_o generation_n and_o to_o be_v begin_v by_o the_o pretend_a public_a spirit_v saint_n of_o this_o nation_n whereas_o mr._n tillinghast_n himself_n serm._n 1._o p._n 25._o say_v the_o work_n of_o christ_n kingdom_n the_o glorious_a beginning_n of_o it_o it_o shall_v be_v about_o the_o time_n of_o the_o jew_n come_v in_o and_o indeed_o the_o come_n in_o of_o the_o jew_n shall_v be_v a_o very_a great_a advancement_n of_o this_o kingdom_n i_o omit_v what_o mr._n parker_n conceive_v of_o the_o waldenses_n and_o other_o as_o long_o since_o beginning_n and_o carry_v it_o on_o there_o be_v nothing_o yet_o appear_v but_o a_o violent_a heady_a presumptuous_a spirit_n in_o those_o person_n who_o have_v think_v themselves_o fit_a to_o begin_v the_o work_n nor_o in_o the_o time_n but_o the_o commotion_n that_o have_v be_v which_o give_v colour_n to_o this_o supposition_n §_o 6._o quinto-monarchians_a hypothesis_n about_o the_o civil_a government_n be_v from_o the_o four_o monarchy_n rome_n and_o the_o dragon_n be_v show_v to_o be_v groundless_a 10._o it_o be_v suppose_v that_o the_o civil_a power_n that_o be_v be_v of_o old_a rome_n or_o the_o four_o monarchy_n or_o as_o they_o speak_v grow_v upon_o the_o old_a root_n of_o wickedness_n and_o bitterness_n or_o be_v a_o remnant_n of_o the_o old_a foundation_n which_o be_v their_o expression_n in_o the_o banner_n display_v p._n 1._o there_o will_v be_v no_o rest_n till_o the_o four_o kingdom_n which_o divide_v itself_o into_o two_o iron_n leg_n ten_o toe_n and_o a_o little_a horn_n be_v whole_o destroy_v in_o all_o the_o law_n constitution_n government_n and_o relic_n thereof_o p._n 29._o the_o five_o kingdom_n which_o be_v christ_n with_o its_o holy_a just_a and_o righteous_a law_n and_o officer_n must_v arise_v with_o destruction_n to_o and_o stand_v up_o in_o the_o place_n of_o the_o four_o kingdom_n and_o the_o law_n and_o officer_n thereof_o show_n to_o be_v the_o law_n constitution_n government_n and_o order_n of_o the_o roman_a empire_n and_o they_o assert_v a_o legislative_a power_n to_o make_v law_n to_o govern_v the_o nation_n only_o in_o christ_n and_o his_o law_n and_o officer_n only_o be_v to_o have_v place_n and_o in_o the_o book_n entitle_v the_o standard_n set_v up_o print_v 1657._o p._n 15._o they_o say_v that_o the_o scripture_n be_v give_v by_o inspiration_n of_o god_n with_o his_o holy_a spirit_n be_v the_o reveal_v will_n and_o rule_n of_o this_o legislator_n to_o be_v constant_o own_v and_o submit_v unto_o in_o time_n of_o war_n and_o peace_n as_o a_o constant_a stand_a rule_n for_o the_o inward_a and_o outward_a man_n wherein_o be_v law_n statue_n precept_n and_o judgement_n for_o all_o case_n condition_n and_o action_n of_o civil_a military_a and_o spiritual_a concern_v either_o in_o particular_a or_o more_o general_a term_n for_o so_o they_o be_v to_o the_o commonwealth_n of_o israel_n the_o only_a type_n of_o the_o lamb_n government_n but_o these_o supposition_n in_o a_o great_a part_n be_v notorious_o false_a for_o the_o government_n by_o king_n lord_n and_o commons_o as_o it_o be_v constitute_v in_o england_n be_v quite_o different_a from_o old_a rome_n whether_o under_o the_o caesar_n or_o pope_n not_o derive_v from_o they_o but_o from_o the_o saxon_n of_o norman_n or_o some_o other_o of_o the_o ancient_a ruler_n of_o this_o island_n nor_o be_v the_o law_n of_o england_n by_o which_o it_o be_v govern_v in_o civil_a affair_n the_o law_n of_o the_o emperor_n which_o be_v that_o which_o we_o call_v the_o civil_a law_n consist_v of_o the_o edict_n and_o constitution_n of_o roman_a emperor_n nor_o the_o canon_n law_n consist_v of_o pope_n decree_n and_o decretal_n but_o the_o common_a and_o statute_n law_n of_o these_o nation_n which_o he_o that_o read_v the_o chronicle_n of_o england_n the_o write_n of_o sir_n thomas_n smith_n of_o the_o commonwealth_n of_o england_n mr._n cambdens_fw-la britannia_fw-la sir_n edward_n cook_n institutes_n the_o preface_n of_o sir_n john_n davis_n to_o his_o irish_a report_n the_o book_n of_o statute_n may_v easy_o perceive_v to_o have_v another_o original_n and_o to_o be_v much_o different_a from_o they_o if_o there_o be_v no_o more_o but_o the_o daily_a practice_n of_o the_o court_n of_o justice_n and_o the_o manner_n of_o choose_v &_o make_v judge_n and_o officer_n to_o refute_v this_o calumny_n it_o be_v enough_o to_o show_v the_o gross_a falsehood_n of_o this_o supposition_n and_o yet_o be_v the_o law_n and_o form_n of_o government_n the_o same_o with_o old_a rome_n they_o be_v not_o therefore_o antichristian_a and_o we_o release_v from_o obedience_n to_o they_o for_o not_o only_a christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n require_v obedience_n to_o they_o but_o also_o s._n paul_n both_o make_v use_n of_o they_o and_o commend_v they_o act_v 16._o 37._o and_o 22._o 25._o and_o 25._o 10_o 11_o 16._o which_o if_o they_o have_v be_v antichristian_a as_o they_o give_v out_o clamorous_o but_o ignorant_o and_o to_o be_v oppose_v with_o great_a hatred_n doubtless_o they_o will_v not_o have_v do_v as_o for_o the_o other_o part_n of_o the_o supposition_n though_o we_o grant_v that_o our_o lord_n christ_n be_v the_o supreme_a legislator_n and_o wherein_o he_o have_v determine_v any_o thing_n his_o law_n be_v to_o stand_v in_o force_n above_z and_o against_o all_o constitution_n and_o law_n of_o man_n yet_o we_o find_v not_o that_o christ_n do_v or_o intend_v to_o make_v any_o particular_a law_n for_o thousand_o of_o thing_n which_o pertain_v to_o civil_a government_n no_o nor_o for_o many_o thing_n pertain_v to_o god_n worship_n and_o church-government_n which_o yet_o require_v a_o determination_n by_o some_o law_n or_o rule_n for_o good_a order_n to_o be_v keep_v thereabouts_o when_o one_o of_o the_o company_n say_v unto_o he_o master_n speak_v to_o my_o brother_n that_o he_o divide_v the_o inheritance_n with_o i_o he_o say_v unto_o he_o man_n who_o make_v i_o a_o judge_n or_o divider_n over_o you_o luk._n 12._o 13_o 14._o nor_o do_v the_o apostle_n or_o the_o governor_n after_o they_o or_o christian_n as_o such_o intermeddle_v with_o make_v law_n or_o judge_v civil_a affair_n any_o far_a than_o they_o be_v entrust_v either_o by_o the_o roman_a governor_n or_o according_a to_o christ_n appointment_n matth._n 18._o 15_o 16_o 17._o or_o the_o apostle_n direction_n about_o compose_v difference_n between_o christian_n 1_o cor._n 6._o 1._o etc._n etc._n or_o the_o exercise_n of_o ecclesiastical_a censure_n or_o miraculous_a power_n do_v require_v though_o it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v deny_v that_o in_o aftertime_n too_o much_o of_o this_o work_n be_v either_o commit_v by_o christian_a emperor_n or_o assume_v by_o the_o ruler_n and_o governor_n of_o christian_a church_n especial_o by_o pope_n of_o rome_n to_o the_o great_a detriment_n of_o christianity_n as_o for_o the_o holy_a scripture_n though_o we_o acknowledge_v their_o sufficiency_n for_o a_o rule_n in_o matter_n of_o faith_n and_o holy_a life_n in_o order_n to_o the_o end_n wherefore_o they_o be_v inspire_v of_o god_n to_o wit_n the_o honour_v and_o serve_v of_o god_n and_o our_o own_o salvation_n yet_o we_o do_v not_o find_v in_o they_o sufficient_a law_n in_o particular_a for_o the_o govern_n of_o all_o civil_a commonwealth_n but_o that_o judge_n and_o officer_n notwithstanding_o what_o we_o find_v in_o the_o book_n of_o m●ses_n and_o the_o prophet_n and_o other_o holy_a write_n will_v be_v to_o seek_v how_o to_o pass_v sentence_n and_o to_o administer_v justice_n in_o thousand_o of_o case_n that_o
abhor_v any_o thing_n sometime_o that_o which_o be_v otherwise_o right_a which_o they_o conceive_v to_o come_v from_o rome_n or_o the_o pope_n be_v terrify_v with_o the_o threaten_n revel_v 14._o 9_o 10_o 11._o against_o those_o who_o worship_n the_o beast_n and_o his_o image_n and_o receive_v his_o mark_n in_o their_o forehead_n or_o in_o their_o hand_n and_o warn_v by_o the_o voice_n from_o heaven_n revel_v 18._o 4._o come_v out_o of_o she_o my_o people_n that_o you_o be_v not_o partaker_n of_o her_o sin_n and_o that_o you_o receive_v not_o of_o her_o plague_n which_o have_v be_v find_v by_o experience_n to_o be_v a_o very_a take_v way_n especial_o with_o the_o vulgar_a and_o common_a sort_n of_o scholar_n who_o be_v little_o verse_v in_o antiquity_n and_o know_v not_o the_o true_a state_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n in_o former_a age_n nor_o by_o what_o degree_n the_o corruption_n thereof_o come_v to_o that_o height_n they_o be_v now_o attain_v to_o it_o be_v now_o a_o very_a common_a course_n with_o they_o who_o endeavour_n to_o render_v their_o opposite_n their_o doctrine_n or_o practice_v odious_a and_o so_o to_o uphold_v their_o faction_n to_o fasten_v on_o they_o by_o clamour_n or_o calumny_n or_o any_o other_o way_n they_o can_v the_o name_n of_o antichristian_a babylon_n the_o mark_n of_o the_o beast_n and_o to_o persuade_v man_n that_o what_o they_o dislike_v be_v from_o rome_n as_o be_v sufficient_a without_o any_o other_o proof_n to_o make_v they_o abominable_a and_o to_o be_v destroy_v thus_o in_o our_o day_n with_o we_o some_o have_v cry_v down_o prelacy_n their_o liturgy_n ceremony_n ordination_n national_a church_n it_o be_v government_n ministry_n title_n and_o whatever_o belong_v thereto_o as_o antichristian_a other_o have_v do_v the_o like_a to_o the_o presbyterial_a classical_a parochial_a church_n their_o ministry_n directory_n government_n maintenence_n other_o have_v do_v the_o same_o to_o the_o congregational_a and_o in_o general_n seeker_n and_o quaker_n have_v in_o a_o clamorous_a way_n like_o scold_n bespatter_v all_o that_o be_v opposite_a to_o they_o with_o this_o reproach_n of_o antichristian_a and_o at_o last_o these_o fifth-monarchy_n man_n have_v furious_o batter_v civil_a power_n &_o all_o that_o belong_v to_o they_o with_o the_o engine_n of_o this_o odious_a brand_n of_o antichristian_a and_o babylonish_n whereby_o much_o irreconcilable_a hatred_n enmity_n and_o opposition_n be_v raise_v among_o christian_n to_o the_o great_a damage_n of_o christian_n protestant_n church_n and_o state_n and_o without_o the_o great_a power_n and_o goodness_n of_o god_n make_v way_n for_o some_o accommodation_n of_o these_o difference_n likely_a so_o to_o weaken_v and_o waste_v we_o by_o intestine_a broil_n that_o we_o shall_v at_o last_o become_v a_o prey_n to_o the_o common_a adversary_n for_o my_o part_n it_o be_v still_o oppose_v by_o i_o long_o since_o when_o saltmarsh_n write_v that_o i_o have_v prove_v infant-baptism_n antichristian_a i_o make_v he_o alter_v it_o and_o when_o a_o meeting_n be_v for_o union_n between_o dissenter_n i_o urge_v th●s_n as_o one_o thing_n necessary_a that_o the_o term_v antichristian_a shall_v be_v forbear_v and_o when_o richard_n hubberthorn_n entitle_v his_o book_n against_o my_o serious_a consideration_n of_o the_o oath_n of_o the_o king_n supremacy_n antichristianism_n reprove_v in_o my_o epistle_n to_o the_o reader_n before_o my_o supplement_n i_o not_o only_o show_v the_o falsehood_n of_o his_o calumny_n but_o also_o endeavour_v brief_o to_o show_v the_o evil_a of_o that_o course_n of_o defame_v opposite_n and_o their_o tenant_n by_o that_o title_n i_o deny_v not_o but_o that_o there_o be_v sufficient_a cause_n give_v to_o protestant_a divine_n to_o charge_v the_o present_a romanist_n with_o antichristianism_n in_o the_o arrogant_a title_n give_v to_o the_o pope_n of_o universal_a bishop_n in_o the_o assertion_n of_o his_o supremacy_n over_o all_o church_n his_o infallibility_n in_o their_o worship_n of_o saint_n angel_n image_n in_o their_o doctrine_n of_o invocation_n of_o saint_n humane_a merit_n and_o satisfaction_n for_o sin_n nor_o shall_v i_o deny_v but_o that_o there_o may_v be_v find_v some_o practice_n or_o doctrine_n among_o other_o which_o may_v in_o a_o qualify_a sense_n be_v term_v antichristian_a but_o to_o make_v the_o protestant_a church_n or_o their_o government_n antichristian_a in_o state_n and_o to_o be_v separate_v from_o and_o to_o be_v destroy_v when_o they_o hold_v the_o faith_n of_o christ_n aright_o because_o of_o some_o corruption_n in_o point_n of_o doctrine_n or_o worship_n or_o discipline_n which_o overthrow_v not_o the_o foundation_n of_o christian_a religion_n be_v intolerable_a much_o more_o to_o make_v civil_a power_n who_o reject_v the_o roman_a pope_n supremacy_n and_o their_o doctrine_n and_o idolatrous_a worship_n to_o be_v antichristian_a from_o rome_n babylon_n from_o a_o imagine_a mixture_n that_o be_v not_o or_o perhaps_o justifiable_a show_v either_o frenzy_n or_o a_o mere_a proud_a arrogant_a factious_a and_o quarrelsome_a humour_n in_o they_o not_o to_o be_v bear_v the_o title_n of_o antichrist_n be_v as_o may_v appear_v by_o st._n john_n word_n to_o be_v apply_v to_o seduce_a teacher_n not_o to_o civil_a power_n though_o persecutor_n as_o the_o roman_a emperor_n than_o be_v yet_o by_o st._n paul_n term_v the_o ordinance_n of_o god_n 5._o it_o be_v suppose_v that_o then_o when_o the_o power_n of_o rome_n adulterate_v from_o its_o pure_a civil_a state_n become_v a_o mix_a antichristian_a state_n the_o beast_n &_o a_o whore_n a_o beastly_a antichristian_a power_n that_o the_o dragon_n or_o satan_n give_v he_o his_o power_n and_o his_o seat_n and_o great_a authority_n it_o be_v true_a that_o it_o be_v say_v that_o st._n john_n see_v a_o beast_n arise_v out_o of_o the_o sea_n have_v seven_o head_n and_o ten_o horn_n and_o upon_o his_o horn_n ten_o crown_n and_o upon_o his_o head_n the_o name_n of_o blasphemy_n and_o that_o the_o beast_n which_o he_o see_v be_v like_a unto_o a_o leopard_n and_o his_o foot_n be_v as_o the_o foot_n of_o a_o bear_n &_o his_o mouth_n as_o the_o mouth_n of_o a_o lion_n and_o the_o dragon_n give_v he_o his_o power_n and_o his_o seat_n and_o great_a authority_n which_o description_n be_v like_o that_o whereby_o the_o babylonian_a persian_a and_o greek_a monarchy_n be_v characterise_v give_v occasion_n to_o judge_v that_o the_o beast_n mention_v revel_v 13._o 1._o 2._o be_v to_o be_v some_o future_a civil_a empire_n like_o to_o they_o and_o the_o have_v seven_o head_n and_o ten_o horn_n and_o upon_o his_o horn_n ten_o crown_n because_o of_o the_o description_n daniel_n 7._o 23_o 24_o 25._o and_o revel_v 17._o 3._o 9_o 12._o argne_n that_o it_o be_v to_o be_v the_o roman_a empire_n divide_v into_o ten_o kingdom_n nor_o be_v it_o to_o be_v deny_v that_o satan_n give_v to_o this_o beast_n his_o power_n that_o be_v his_o force_n and_o his_o seat_n that_o be_v rome_n and_o the_o dominion_n belong_v to_o it_o &_o great_a authority_n that_o be_v power_n to_o command_n whereby_o the_o idolatry_n term_v blasphemy_n which_o the_o christian_a emperor_n have_v cast_v down_o be_v revive_v and_o the_o persecution_n that_o for_o a_o time_n cease_v be_v renew_v but_o that_o this_o power_n and_o seat_n and_o great_a authority_n be_v not_o give_v before_o by_o the_o dragon_n to_o the_o civil_a power_n of_o old_a rome_n though_o a_o bloody_a persecuter_n and_o devourer_n of_o the_o creation_n and_o god_n heritage_n be_v to_o be_v deny_v for_o by_o compare_v revel_v 13._o 1_o 2._o with_o rev._n 12._o 3_o 4._o 7._o it_o may_v be_v rather_o gather_v that_o satan_n have_v give_v the_o same_o power_n seat_n and_o great_a authority_n to_o the_o roman_a emperor_n before_o as_o he_o do_v to_o the_o king_n after_o though_o it_o be_v exercise_v in_o another_o manner_n and_o upon_o other_o pretence_n the_o power_n and_o seat_n and_o authority_n give_v by_o the_o dragon_n be_v not_o to_o be_v mean_v of_o civil_a power_n to_o make_v law_n and_o to_o execute_v they_o for_o the_o well-ordering_a of_o commonwealth_n and_o civil_a state_n but_o the_o power_n force_n or_o authority_n which_o be_v usurp_v by_o nabuchadnezzar_n when_o he_o set_v up_o a_o golden_a image_n to_o be_v worship_v and_o cast_v the_o three_o jew_n into_o the_o fiery_a furnance_n and_o this_o may_v be_v gather_v from_o v_o 4_o 5._o and_o they_o worship_v the_o dragon_n which_o give_v power_n unto_o the_o beast_n and_o they_o worship_v the_o beast_n say_v who_o be_v like_a unto_o the_o beast_n who_o be_v able_a to_o make_v war_n with_o he_o and_o there_o be_v give_v unto_o he_o a_o mouth_n speak_v great_a thing_n and_o blasphemy_n and_o power_n be_v give_v unto_o he_o to_o continue_v or_o to_o make_v war_n forty_o and_o two_o month_n whereby_o may_v be_v perceive_v that_o the_o
against_o god_n to_o reward_n babylon_n but_o it_o may_v be_v understand_v as_o a_o prediction_n of_o what_o shall_v be_v not_o as_o a_o command_n of_o what_o ought_v to_o be_v do_v by_o they_o as_o their_o duty_n as_o the_o like_a expression_n jerem._n 50._o 2._o 14_o 15._o 21._o 26_o 27_o 28_o 29._o which_o be_v imitate_v rev._n 18._o 4._o 6._o revel_v 19_o 17._o isai._n 56._o 9_o be_v to_o be_v expound_v or_o as_o a_o permission_n allow_v a_o person_n to_o do_v it_o as_o when_o st._n paul_n say_v 1_o cor._n 10._o 27._o whatsoever_o be_v set_v before_o you_o eat_z ask_v no_o question_n for_o conscience_n sake_n which_o do_v not_o enjoin_v they_o to_o eat_v whatsoever_o be_v set_v before_o they_o so_o as_o that_o if_o they_o do_v not_o eat_v it_o will_v be_v their_o sin_n for_o than_o they_o shall_v be_v require_v to_o be_v glutton_n but_o be_v a_o indulgence_n to_o they_o allow_v they_o liberty_n to_o eat_v as_o a_o thing_n not_o unlawful_a but_o indifferent_a which_o unless_o further_o admonish_v they_o may_v eat_v without_o scruple_n of_o conscience_n 4._o that_o it_o be_v not_o a_o command_n to_o the_o people_n who_o do_v come_v out_o of_o babylon_n nor_o their_o act_n to_o reward_v double_a to_o babylon_n and_o fill_v to_o her_o double_a but_o a_o prediction_n of_o what_o shall_v be_v do_v by_o other_o may_v be_v gather_v in_o that_o the_o reward_n to_o they_o be_v to_o be_v construe_v to_o have_v be_v the_o slaughter_n of_o they_o and_o the_o cup_n which_o babylon_n fill_v be_v the_o cup_n of_o blood_n which_o she_o be_v to_o drink_v of_o revel_v 16._o 6._o now_o then_o those_o person_n who_o be_v reward_v to_o who_o this_o cup_n be_v fill_v by_o babylon_n be_v such_o as_o have_v be_v put_v to_o death_n by_o babylon_n and_o therefore_o can_v not_o reward_v her_o double_a or_o fill_v her_o double_a in_o the_o cup_n which_o she_o have_v fill_v unless_o they_o be_v raise_v from_o the_o dead_a and_o consequent_o can_v not_o be_v the_o same_o individual_n who_o be_v invite_v to_o come_v out_o of_o babylon_n revel_v 18._o 4._o 5._o upon_o this_o consideration_n it_o be_v also_o probable_a that_o the_o reward_v and_o fill_v revel_v 18._o 6._o be_v ascribe_v to_o the_o martyr_n kill_v because_o god_n do_v it_o by_o reason_n of_o the_o cry_n of_o their_o blood_n which_o be_v intimate_v by_o the_o word_n v_o 20._o rejoice_v over_o she_o thou_o heaven_n and_o you_o holy_a apostle_n and_o prophet_n for_o god_n have_v avenge_v you_o on_o she_o and_o other_o word_n revel_v 11._o 18._o do_v intimate_v the_o same_o which_o if_o true_a be_v nothing_o to_o the_o smite_v work_n of_o the_o quinto-monarchians_a by_o military_a power_n turn_v their_o ploughshare_n into_o sword_n but_o only_o intimate_v the_o efficacy_n of_o the_o blood_n of_o martyr_n to_o bring_v divine_a vengeance_n on_o babylon_n 6._o but_o be_v it_o grant_v that_o the_o people_n of_o god_n invite_v to_o come_v out_o of_o babylon_n revel_v 18._o 4._o be_v the_o same_o numerical_a person_n who_o be_v command_v to_o reward_n babylon_n double_a and_o to_o fill_v her_o double_a in_o the_o cup_n which_o she_o have_v fill_v and_o they_o be_v to_o do_v this_o by_o smite_v with_o the_o sword_n yet_o this_o be_v nothing_o to_o the_o fifth-monarchy-man_n in_o england_n unless_o they_o shall_v be_v in_o babylon_n at_o that_o time_n when_o god_n people_n shall_v come_v out_o of_o she_o and_o do_v so_o come_v out_o of_o she_o and_o therefore_o there_o be_v no_o command_n revel_v 18._o 6._o for_o they_o to_o smite_v till_o then_o but_o they_o be_v to_o put_v up_o their_o sword_n into_o the_o sheath_n and_o to_o lead_v a_o quiet_a and_o peaceable_a life_n in_o all_o godliness_n and_o honesty_n under_o their_o governor_n else_o they_o will_v be_v guilty_a of_o resist_v and_o self-revenging_a condemn_v by_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n which_o be_v to_o be_v prove_v §_o 10._o quinto-monarchians_a doctrine_n tend_v to_o murder_v and_o ruin_n of_o humane_a society_n hence_o also_o a_o seven_o argument_n be_v deduce_v that_o the_o smite_v work_n to_o which_o the_o doctrine_n of_o quinto-monarchians_a incite_v be_v wilful_a murder_n yea_o the_o most_o horrible_a murder_n that_o ever_o be_v except_o he_o who_o be_v a_o murderer_n from_o the_o beginning_n john_n 8._o 44._o or_o they_o who_o crucify_v the_o lord_n of_o glory_n for_o it_o incite_v to_o a_o profess_a smite_v and_o spoil_v of_o all_o the_o civil_a power_n on_o earth_n even_o those_o to_o who_o they_o be_v bind_v to_o be_v subject_a by_o all_o law_n of_o religion_n nature_n country_n and_o reason_n and_o to_o act_v these_o thing_n with_o all_o extremity_n out_o of_o imagine_a zeal_n for_o christ_n which_o if_o it_o be_v not_o according_a to_o knowledge_n be_v a_o fire_n of_o hell_n which_o will_v hardly_o be_v ever_o quench_v and_o in_o prosecution_n thereof_o to_o smite_v those_o who_o resist_v they_o which_o must_v of_o necessity_n be_v all_o those_o who_o adhere_v to_o civil_a power_n who_o will_v be_v doubtless_o the_o most_o conscientious_a saint_n on_o earth_n and_o the_o great_a part_n of_o mankind_n which_o must_v needs_o be_v wilful_a murder_n and_o robbery_n if_o they_o have_v no_o warrant_n to_o do_v it_o but_o they_o have_v none_o neither_o revel_v 18._o 6._o nor_o any_o other_o scripture_n or_o revelation_n of_o god_n that_o we_o or_o they_o do_v know_v nor_o law_n of_o nature_n or_o man_n do_v in_o the_o least_o warrant_n or_o permit_v it_o but_o all_o condemn_v it_o and_o therefore_o if_o they_o shall_v be_v permit_v to_o act_v their_o design_n which_o god_n forbid_v there_o will_v be_v more_o destruction_n and_o waste_v than_o ever_o yet_o be_v make_v by_o man_n since_o the_o world_n begin_v and_o more_o true_o they_o may_v be_v term_v babylon_n in_o who_o the_o blood_n of_o the_o saint_n be_v find_v than_o any_o civil_a power_n yet_o extant_a now_o murder-makes_a person_n the_o child_n of_o the_o devil_n there_o be_v no_o sin_n more_o resemble_v he_o john_n 8._o 44._o whosoever_o hate_v his_o brother_n be_v a_o murderer_n and_o you_o know_v say_v st._n john_n 1_o epist._n ch_z 3._o 15._o that_o no_o murderer_n have_v eternal_a life_n abide_v in_o he_o therefore_o such_o be_v no_o saint_n but_o antichristian_a and_o the_o doctrine_n move_v to_o it_o be_v damnable_a and_o antichristan_n to_o which_o i_o shall_v add_v a_o eight_o argument_n take_v from_o the_o direful_a effect_n to_o which_o the_o quinto-monarchians_a doctrine_n of_o overturning_a and_o smite_v civil_a power_n and_o law_n tend_v which_o be_v all_o the_o misery_n which_o anarchy_n and_o confusion_n bring_v on_o the_o world_n even_o to_o the_o destruction_n of_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n on_o earth_n or_o rather_o according_a to_o the_o project_n they_o propound_v humane_a society_n if_o not_o the_o extirpation_n of_o mankind_n for_o by_o take_v away_o civil_a power_n safety_n of_o person_n and_o all_o comfort_n of_o life_n be_v either_o take_v away_o or_o much_o endanger_v when_o the_o prophet_n isaiah_n threaten_v calamity_n to_o the_o people_n of_o the_o jew_n isai._n 3._o 1_o 2_o 3_o 4_o 5._o he_o tell_v they_o the_o lord_n the_o lord_n of_o host_n do_v take_v away_o the_o mighty_a man_n and_o the_o man_n of_o war_n the_o judge_n and_o the_o prophet_n and_o the_o prudent_a and_o the_o ancient_a the_o captain_n of_o fifty_o and_o the_o honourable_a man_n and_o the_o counsellor_n and_o the_o cunning_a artificer_n and_o the_o eloquent_a orator_n and_o i_o will_v give_v child_n to_o be_v their_o prince_n and_o babe_n shall_v rule_v over_o they_o and_o the_o people_n shall_v be_v oppress_v every_o one_o by_o another_o and_o every_o one_o by_o his_o neighbour_n the_o child_n shall_v behave_v himself_o proud_o against_o the_o ancient_a and_o the_o base_a against_o the_o honourable_a whereby_o it_o may_v be_v perceive_v that_o god_n take_v it_o to_o be_v a_o curse_n next_o after_o the_o take_v away_o the_o stay_n and_o the_o staff_n the_o whole_a stay_n of_o bread_n and_o the_o whole_a stay_n of_o water_n to_o take_v from_o the_o jew_n their_o ruler_n teacher_n noble_n scholar_n and_o therefore_o there_o can_v be_v a_o great_a calamity_n to_o a_o people_n after_o the_o destruction_n of_o the_o fruit_n of_o the_o earth_n whereby_o famine_n come_v than_o to_o smite_v time_n their_o civil_a power_n and_o eminent_a person_n who_o have_v be_v the_o protector_n and_o guide_n of_o the_o people_n for_o than_o people_n become_v murderer_n and_o robber_n one_o of_o another_o and_o all_o place_n be_v fill_v with_o fear_n danger_n cry_n and_o misery_n of_o all_o sort_n the_o evil_n we_o have_v feel_v in_o our_o own_o civil_a war_n show_v what_o misery_n it_o be_v to_o have_v soldier_n rule_v and_o not_o prince_n and_o
hatred_n as_o we_o see_v and_o find_v a_o remnant_n do_v at_o this_o day_n p._n 55._o the_o lord_n will_v use_v and_o engage_v his_o people_n to_o act_v in_o and_o perform_v such_o a_o destroy_a work_n upon_o the_o world_n as_o this_o work_n of_o the_o stone_n be_v namely_o the_o total_a commotion_n and_o dissolution_n of_o the_o old_a heaven_n and_o old_a earth_n and_o all_o the_o create_a power_n rule_v therein_o because_o it_o be_v the_o decree_n determination_n promise_n and_o appointment_n of_o the_o father_n p._n 56._o the_o lord_n by_o these_o figurative_a expression_n hold_v forth_o the_o dissolution_n of_o all_o old_a thing_n formal_a antichristian_a church-state_n ordinance_n worship_n discipline_n and_o doctrine_n all_o beastlike_a worldly_a government_n institution_n law_n politic_a constitution_n power_n etc._n etc._n in_o a_o word_n the_o heaven_n and_o the_o earth_n of_o all_o the_o nation_n isai._n 5._o 30._o p._n 57_o so_o that_o jesus_n christ_n will_v admit_v of_o no_o competitor_n but_o will_v have_v the_o sole_a legislative_a power_n and_o exercise_v of_o the_o chief_a magistracy_n and_o be_v lord_n paramount_n over_o the_o whole_a earth_n and_o therefore_o god_n be_v engage_v to_o appear_v with_o his_o smite_v stone_n to_o make_v way_n for_o this_o glorious_a mountain_n of_o peace_n p._n 59_o that_o all_o the_o blood_n of_o god_n people_n be_v find_v in_o babylon_n for_o they_o i._n e._n her_o civil_a power_n revel_v 16._o 6_o 7._o have_v shed_v the_o blood_n of_o the_o saint_n and_o prophet_n revel_v 17._o 6._o ch_n 18._o 24._o &_o 19_o 1._o jer._n 50._o 14._o now_o therefore_o god_n by_o way_n of_o recompense_n &_o retaliation_n have_v ordain_v that_o the_o saint_n shall_v be_v his_o instrument_n by_o which_o he_o will_v execute_v his_o vengeance_n upon_o the_o power_n of_o the_o world_n who_o be_v all_o of_o they_o murderer_n according_o god_n command_v his_o people_n &_o it_o be_v their_o duty_n to_o obey_v to_o reward_n babylon_n double_a as_o she_o reward_v they_o revel_v 18._o 6._o and_o they_o shall_v give_v her_o blood_n to_o drink_v p._n 62._o the_o call_v which_o the_o stone_n shall_v have_v to_o act_v in_o its_o smite_v work_n be_v for_o the_o great_a part_n thereof_o now_o pertinent_a and_o fit_o applicable_a to_o a_o faithful_a remnant_n now_o extant_a in_o england_n and_o fulfil_v in_o and_o upon_o they_o and_o also_o see_v that_o the_o sign_n lay_v down_o in_o the_o word_n of_o god_n for_o the_o time_n of_o the_o end_n be_v in_o a_o gr●at_a measure_n now_o fulfil_v and_o accomplish_v in_o england_n remnant_n therefore_o we_o conclude_v and_o assert_v that_o it_o be_v lawful_a and_o warrantable_a and_o be_v a_o duty_n incumbent_n for_o captivate_v zion_n and_o oppress_v saint_n to_o stand_v up_o in_o god_n name_n and_o fear_n and_o deliver_v themselves_o and_o that_o glorious_a gospel_n of_o the_o kingdom_n now_o by_o they_o declare_v to_o the_o world_n from_o persecution_n oppression_n and_o that_o long_a captivity_n and_o bondage_n which_o she_o have_v remain_v in_o and_o to_o break_v the_o yoke_n of_o the_o oppressor_n which_o be_v now_o upon_o her_o neck_n according_a to_o the_o word_n &_o commandment_n of_o the_o lord_n zach._n 2._o 7._o isai._n 52._o 2._o we_o be_v persuade_v that_o the_o work_n of_o the_o stone_n be_v the_o present_a work_n of_o this_o generation_n and_o our_o present_a work_n and_o do_v according_o exhort_v the_o saint_n to_o arise_v to_o fall_v upon_o the_o enemy_n p._n 63._o the_o saint_n in_o order_n to_o this_o smite_v work_n shall_v be_v convert_v from_o all_o the_o civil_a power_n and_o rule_n of_o antichrist_n and_o the_o ten_o horn_a beast_n upon_o which_o the_o mystery_n harlot_n sit_v p._n 65._o that_o it_o be_v their_o duty_n to_o withdraw_v their_o hand_n heart_n affection_n purse_n and_o prayer_n from_o the_o civil_a power_n or_o power_n of_o the_o beast_n that_o they_o shall_v quit_v all_o their_o interest_n and_o claim_v in_o and_o to_o the_o old_a heaven_n and_o earth_n and_o state_n of_o thing_n shall_v forsake_v father_n mother_n etc._n etc._n and_o shall_v convert_v house_n land_n possession_n and_o enjoyment_n command_v to_o be_v prudent_o beat_v into_o sword_n and_o spear_n into_o one_o common_a stock_n to_o be_v consecrate_v for_o the_o management_n of_o this_o great_a affair_n p._n 66._o and_o in_o such_o a_o practice_n they_o shall_v be_v no_o loser_n christ_n will_v give_v they_o a_o hundred_o fold_n even_o the_o spoil_n of_o all_o their_o great_a and_o rich_a enemy_n who_o be_v his_o opposer_n and_o in_o the_o end_n a_o eternal_a crown_n the_o saint_n be_v with_o moses_n to_o refuse_v court_n honour_n and_o favour_n and_o preferment_n egyptian_n wisdom_n learning_n revenue_n and_o great_a riches_n with_o david_n to_o leave_v their_o common_a duty_n as_o matter_n of_o small_a value_n and_o little_a concernment_n in_o comparison_n of_o this_o noble_a and_o worthy_a employment_n to_o fight_v against_o the_o philistine_n so_o be_v the_o civil_a power_n or_o common_a enemy_n to_o the_o commonwealth_n of_o israel_n p._n 71_o we_o do_v profess_v we_o can_v be_v content_a or_o satisfy_v until_o christ_n kingdom_n flourish_v but_o will_v in_o god_n name_n and_o strength_n press_v forward_o till_o we_o come_v to_o the_o mark_n which_o be_v the_o state_n of_o the_o true_a rest_n so_o we_o call_v that_o kingdom_n and_o power_n where_o the_o saint_n shall_v cease_v from_o all_o their_o labour_n in_o and_o with_o christ._n p._n 69._o do_v not_o the_o lord_n call_v the_o saint_n to_o arise_v also_o unto_o the_o prey_n p._n 71._o the_o work_n of_o god_n against_o nation_n province_n university_n corporation_n city_n town_n king_n ruler_n chief_a captain_n mighty_a man_n in_o church_n and_o commonwealth_n enemy_n of_o christ_n kingly_a office_n shall_v be_v the_o lesson_n of_o faithful_a saint_n the_o true_a way_n will_v be_v discover_v and_o make_v plain_a all_o rebel_n and_o traitor_n open_a and_o profane_a more_o close_a pretender_n and_o formal_o godly_a discover_v hatred_n in_o and_o among_o his_o saint_n against_o those_o several_a part_n form_n power_n of_o babylon_n doleful_a howl_n and_o mourn_v among_o the_o merchant_n of_o babylon_n who_o be_v the_o great_a and_o rich_a man_n who_o heart_n dwell_v on_o the_o earth_n p._n 75._o the_o saint_n must_v separate_v not_o only_o from_o the_o romish_a universal_a national_a provincial_a and_o diocesan_n church-state_n of_o babylon_n and_o antichrist_n together_o with_o their_o discipline_n doctrine_n worship_n and_o ceremony_n but_o also_o and_o more_o particular_o which_o be_v most_o proper_o a_o work_n precedent_n to_o be_v do_v by_o the_o saint_n in_o order_n to_o the_o smite_v work_n of_o the_o stone_n from_o the_o national_a and_o parochial_a parish_n church_n state_n and_o assembly_n form_n and_o class_n of_o this_o and_o other_o antichristian_a nation_n which_o we_o call_v the_o politic_a and_o no_o more_o than_o civil_a stratagem_n and_o cunning_a invention_n of_o antichrist_n to_o divide_v unto_o himself_o the_o whole_a land_n for_o gain_n whereby_o all_o man_n to_o the_o low_a rank_n be_v compel_v forcible_o to_o contribute_v to_o the_o maintenance_n of_o his_o false_a prophet_n and_o so_o wickedness_n be_v establish_v by_o a_o law_n again_o further_o from_o those_o church_n that_o be_v select_a &_o more_o pure_a as_o be_v seem_o refine_v which_o be_v the_o gather_v in_o a_o pastoral_a way_n reduce_v thing_n to_o primitive_a practice_n so_o far_o as_o they_o be_v corrupt_v and_o adulterate_v and_o find_v opposer_n of_o the_o kingly_a office_n of_o jesus_n christ_n in_o and_o over_o the_o whole_a world_n and_o more_o especial_a in_o the_o administration_n of_o this_o part_n or_o dispensation_n of_o that_o kingdom_n to_o wit_n that_o of_o the_o stone_n or_o war_n against_o his_o enemy_n for_o even_o in_o this_o generation_n there_o be_v a_o sort_n of_o people_n and_o those_o we_o hope_v godly_a that_o do_v acknowledge_v and_o wait_v in_o the_o expectation_n of_o the_o late_a yea_o and_o hold_v forth_o the_o personal_a appearance_n of_o our_o lord_n as_o king_n yet_o nevertheless_o oppose_v and_o deny_v and_o quite_o leap_v over_o this_o stone_n and_o its_o work_n thereby_o endeavour_v to_o render_v the_o saint_n useless_a and_o uncapable_a of_o destroy_v babylon_n which_o must_v make_v ●way_n and_o without_o which_o we_o can_v attain_v to_o the_o peaceable_a and_o more_o glorious_a administration_n of_o this_o kingdom_n by_o remove_v those_o mountain_n hill_n and_o power_n of_o darkness_n which_o do_v oppose_v and_o hinder_v it_o p._n 76._o and_o from_o those_o humane_a heathenish_a and_o antichristian_a way_n mean_n and_o help_n for_o the_o attainment_n whereof_o man_n study_v &_o which_o they_o practise_v in_o the_o school_n and_o university_n of_o these_o nation_n as_o thing_n necessary_a for_o the_o fit_v prepare_v
few_o man_n hand_n to_o beggar_n the_o whole_a these_o take_v toll_v and_o custom_n of_o their_o brethren_n p._n 14._o why_o may_v not_o the_o soldier_n pull_v the_o judge_n out_o of_o westminster_n hall_n and_o take_v all_o their_o rusty_a record_n law_n etc._n etc._n and_o make_v a_o fire_n on_o they_o that_o so_o we_o may_v have_v honest_a godly_a law_n according_a to_o the_o scripture_n and_o reason_n in_o the_o preface_n to_o the_o 8_o last_o sermon_n of_o mr._n tillinghast_n who_o be_v much_o for_o the_o fifth-monarchy_n be_v these_o word_n let_v none_o take_v offence_n at_o this_o language_n for_o i_o can_v forbear_v vilify_a the_o kingdom_n of_o the_o four_o beast_n when_o my_o thought_n be_v upon_o the_o magnify_n of_o the_o kingdom_n power_n and_o glory_n of_o jesus_n christ_n our_o lord_n and_o if_o the_o virgin_n daughter_n of_o zion_n without_o any_o disparagement_n to_o her_o holy_a modesty_n may_v of_o old_a be_v allow_v by_o god_n himself_o to_o despise_v the_o great_a king_n of_o assyria_n and_o to_o laugh_v he_o to_o scorn_v i_o know_v no_o reason_n to_o the_o contrary_a but_o one_o of_o the_o lamb_n follower_n may_v without_o breach_n of_o rule_n in_o a_o holy_a triumph_n of_o faith_n express_a contempt_n of_o the_o king_n of_o the_o earth_n who_o be_v all_o of_o they_o the_o lover_n of_o the_o mother_n of_o harlot_n and_o abomination_n of_o the_o earth_n in_o the_o first_o sermon_n p._n 2._o of_o the_o three_o edition_n 1659._o mr._n tillinghast_n say_v david_n kingdom_n be_v a_o type_n of_o christ_n kingdom_n and_o indeed_o whereas_o this_o kingdom_n here_o jerem._n 33._o 20_o 21._o promise_a be_v shadow_v forth_o by_o that_o of_o david_n it_o do_v hold_v thus_o much_o that_o the_o kingdom_n be_v not_o only_o a_o spiritual_a kingdom_n but_o a_o outward_a visible_a kingdom_n for_o such_o a_o throne_n and_o kingdom_n david_n be_v p._n 14._o yet_o the_o woman_n have_v not_o have_v her_o day_n upon_o the_o serpent_n but_o there_o be_v a_o time_n wherein_o the_o woman_n must_v have_v a_o day_n upon_o the_o serpent_n to_o break_v his_o head_n therefore_o there_o be_v such_o a_o kingdom_n wherein_o the_o saint_n of_o jesus_n christ_n shall_v crush_v all_o the_o enemy_n of_o jesus_n christ_n in_o the_o world_n p._n 39_o the_o devil_n play_v his_o game_n thus_o in_o the_o new_a testament_n time_n he_o make_v man_n to_o look_v for_o a_o outward_a kingdom_n only_o when_o christ_n be_v about_o to_o set_v up_o a_o spiritual_a kingdom_n &_o now_o that_o christ_n will_v set_v up_o a_o outward_a kingdom_n say_v the_o devil_n look_v only_o to_o the_o spiritual_a kingdom_n p._n 41._o god_n peoples_n faith_n be_v not_o ground_v on_o fancy_n but_o they_o see_v and_o know_v that_o god_n be_v do_v some_o glorious_a thing_n in_o the_o world_n he_o be_v overturning_a kingdom_n and_o set_v up_o the_o kingdom_n of_o his_o son_n serm._n 3._o p._n 57_o he_o conceive_v the_o work_n of_o christ_n visible_a kingdom_n over_o the_o world_n the_o work_n of_o the_o present_a time_n one_o great_a article_n of_o our_o faith_n the_o work_n that_o god_n do_v call_v his_o child_n to_o at_o this_o day_n and_o he_o call_v upon_o they_o from_o heaven_n to_o attend_v to_o &_o that_o they_o be_v to_o expect_v it_o before_o christ_n come_v forth_o &_o bring_v his_o kingdom_n with_o he_o p._n 60_o 61._o he_o distinguish_v in_o christ_n visible_a kingdom_n between_o the_o kingdom_n of_o the_o stone_n and_o of_o the_o mountain_n this_o he_o call_v the_o kingdom_n of_o glory_n wherein_o the_o saint_n shall_v not_o work_v but_o receive_v that_o the_o work_a kingdom_n of_o the_o saint_n wherein_o saint_n be_v by_o the_o lord_n employ_v to_o do_v some_o notable_a service_n against_o his_o come_n which_o be_v the_o break_n down_o the_o great_a image_n the_o bring_v down_o all_o his_o enemy_n that_o when_o he_o come_v he_o may_v find_v they_o his_o footstool_n for_o he_o be_v to_o fit_v at_o the_o father_n right_a hand_n until_o all_o his_o enemy_n be_v make_v his_o footstool_n it_o be_v a_o kingdom_n wherein_o plow-shaers_a be_v to_o be_v beat_v into_o sword_n there_o shall_v be_v wonderful_a use_n of_o sword_n weapon_n of_o war_n out_o of_o daniel_n 12._o 12_o 13._o he_o gather_v the_o beginning_n of_o each_o of_o these_o p._n 62._o true_o i_o look_v upon_o it_o as_o be_v a_o main_a and_o principal_a part_n of_o that_o faith_n once_o deliver_v to_o the_o saint_n as_o touch_v the_o five_o kingdom_n p._n 63._o though_o this_o stone_n fundamental_o be_v christ_n himself_o yet_o consider_v as_o smite_v the_o great_a image_n it_o can_v be_v no_o other_o but_o christ_n mystical_a christ_n in_o his_o member_n and_o the_o cut_n out_o of_o this_o stone_n can_v be_v mean_v as_o some_o will_v have_v it_o of_o christ_n first_o come_v p._n 65._o now_o if_o it_o can_v be_v make_v appear_v that_o that_o with_o which_o the_o five_o kingdom_n do_v begin_v the_o work_n of_o the_o great_a image_n the_o overturning_a the_o throne_n of_o the_o king_n be_v to_o be_v perform_v by_o the_o saint_n as_o chief_a instrument_n in_o the_o management_n of_o it_o than_o it_o follow_v of_o necessity_n there_o must_v be_v such_o a_o thing_n as_o the_o civil_a and_o military_a power_n to_o be_v in_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o saint_n and_o that_o before_o the_o day_n of_o christ_n appearance_n they_o must_v have_v this_o power_n in_o their_o hand_n for_o the_o performance_n of_o that_o work_n and_o if_o so_o then_o it_o be_v not_o evil_a for_o the_o saint_n and_o people_n of_o god_n to_o seek_v for_o it_o to_o pray_v for_o it_o to_o plead_v for_o it_o for_o it_o be_v to_o come_v into_o their_o hand_n for_o the_o do_v of_o their_o work_n before_o the_o day_n of_o christ_n appearance_n and_o then_o endeavour_v to_o prove_v that_o this_o work_n with_o which_o the_o five_o kingdom_n do_v begin_v be_v a_o work_n to_o be_v perform_v by_o saint_n as_o the_o chief_a and_o principal_a instrument_n in_o the_o do_n of_o it_o p._n 74._o there_o be_v the_o come_n forth_o of_o christ_n when_o his_o enemy_n by_o his_o saint_n be_v make_v his_o footstool_n p._n 79._o he_o give_v some_o figue_n that_o this_o work_n be_v near_o at_o hand_n and_o p._n 82._o he_o make_v this_o to_o be_v a_o general_a sign_n that_o never_o be_v there_o a_o principle_n that_o do_v run_v so_o much_o among_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n as_o this_o have_v do_v within_o these_o twelve_o month_n i_o have_v set_v down_o the_o word_n of_o those_o person_n that_o i_o shall_v oppose_v in_o their_o position_n that_o i_o may_v not_o be_v think_v to_o impose_v upon_o they_o out_o of_o they_o it_o be_v manifest_a that_o they_o assert_v that_o all_o the_o power_n not_o only_o ecclesiastical_a but_o also_o civil_a and_o military_a of_o the_o nation_n even_o the_o protestant_n as_o well_o as_o the_o turkish_a and_o romish_a kingdom_n be_v antichristian_a and_o all_o their_o law_n officer_n school_n corporation_n title_n privilege_n degree_n and_o rank_n of_o man_n in_o their_o politic_a and_o military_a as_o well_o as_o ecclesiastical_a state_n babylonish_n from_o the_o four_o monarchy_n &_o that_o those_o that_o they_o call_v public_a spirit_v saint_n of_o this_o age_n distinct_a from_o notional_a professor_n and_o formal_o godly_a be_v to_o hate_n separate_v from_o they_o deny_v any_o assistance_n to_o they_o rise_v up_o against_o they_o to_o destroy_v they_o utter_o to_o smite_v they_o in_o order_n to_o the_o set_n up_o a_o five_o monarchy_n of_o christ_n visible_a kingdom_n on_o earth_n that_o the_o saint_n may_v be_v a_o free_a commonwealth_n of_o themselves_o subject_a to_o no_o law_n but_o christ_n and_o free_a from_o all_o oppression_n of_o man_n §_o 3._o the_o doctrine_n of_o smite_v power_n be_v prove_v from_o scripture_n precept_n to_o be_v wicked_a this_o doctrine_n be_v damnable_a and_o antichristian_a as_o be_v prove_v by_o these_o argument_n follow_v whereof_o the_o first_o be_v take_v from_o those_o precept_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n and_o the_o old_a which_o forbid_v such_o disobedience_n vilify_a refuse_v assistance_n smite_v of_o power_n over_o we_o dignity_n officer_n but_o command_v honour_n obedience_n assistance_n fear_v to_o power_n dignity_n and_o their_o law_n and_o may_v be_v thus_o form_v that_o doctrine_n be_v damnable_a and_o antichristian_a which_o commend_v and_o urge_v practice_n and_o action_n contrary_a to_o the_o precept_n of_o christ_n his_o holy_a apostle_n and_o other_o holy_a man_n in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n this_o proposition_n be_v of_o itself_o manifest_a unless_o that_o be_v not_o acknowledge_v damnable_a which_o be_v condemn_v by_o so_o holy_a person_n nor_o antichristian_a in_o a_o large_a sense_n which_o be_v flat_o opposite_a to_o christ_n and_o his_o holy_a
apostle_n express_v doctrine_n but_o the_o doctrine_n which_o commend_v and_o urge_v such_o disobedience_n vilify_a refuse_v assistance_n smite_v of_o power_n as_o the_o word_n of_o the_o forecited_n author_n call_v usual_o fifth-monarchy-man_n do_v be_v contrary_a to_o the_o precept_n of_o christ_n his_o holy_a apostle_n and_o other_o holy_a man_n in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n therefore_o that_o doctrine_n be_v damnable_a and_o antichristian_a the_o minor_a be_v prove_v from_o those_o precept_n which_o express_o command_v subjection_n fear_v honour_n assistence_n to_o they_o whereof_o the_o first_o be_v that_o of_o our_o saviour_n matth._n 22._o 21._o mark_v 12._o 18._o luke_n 20._o 27._o where_o our_o lord_n christ_n be_v by_o the_o disciple_n of_o the_o pharisee_n and_o herodian_o pose_v with_o this_o captious_a question_n tend_v to_o entangle_v he_o in_o his_o talk_n be_v it_o lawful_a to_o give_v tribute_n to_o caesar_n or_o not_o after_o the_o show_n of_o tribute_n money_n and_o the_o acknowledgement_n that_o it_o have_v caesar_n image_n and_o inscription_n our_o lord_n christ_n thence_o infer_v that_o it_o be_v due_a to_o he_o who_o image_n and_o inscription_n it_o bear_v resolve_v they_o that_o they_o be_v to_o render_v to_o caesar_n the_o thing_n that_o be_v caesar_n to_o wit_n tribute_n honour_n and_o that_o subjection_n which_o be_v then_o give_v to_o he_o as_o emperor_n now_o it_o be_v know_v that_o the_o emperor_n or_o caesar_n then_o reign_v be_v tiberius_n caesar_n luke_n 3._o 1._o who_o come_v to_o the_o empire_n by_o wicked_a practice_n and_o not_o only_o lead_v a_o most_o vicious_a and_o wicked_a life_n in_o uncleanness_n and_o irreligion_n but_o also_o be_v a_o bloody_a oppressor_n of_o the_o senate_n and_o people_n of_o rome_n as_o may_v be_v see_v in_o tacitus_n his_o annal_n suetonius_n in_o the_o relation_n of_o his_o life_n and_o other_o historian_n therefore_o the_o doctrine_n that_o teach_v disobedience_n deny_v of_o tribute_n honour_n subjection_n to_o king_n and_o prince_n as_o be_v oppressor_n enemy_n to_o christ_n that_o urge_v hatred_n smite_v of_o they_o be_v contrary_a to_o christ_n precept_n which_o require_v tribute_n honour_n and_o subjection_n to_o be_v give_v they_o though_o by_o wicked_a way_n obtain_v empire_n and_o most_o wicked_o rule_v and_o put_v christ_n himself_o to_o death_n the_o next_o text_n be_v that_o full_a and_o plain_a precept_n of_o the_o apostle_n paul_n rom._n 13._o 1_o 2_o 3_o 4_o 5_o 6_o 7._o where_o st._n paul_n require_v of_o every_o soul_n therefore_o of_o the_o most_o enlighten_v saint_n to_o be_v subject_a to_o the_o high_a or_o supreme_a power_n who_o be_v term_v v._n 3._o ruler_n or_o prince_n such_o as_o bear_v the_o sword_n v._n 4._o therefore_o civil_a magistrate_n who_o have_v power_n of_o punish_v even_o with_o death_n who_o be_v revenger_n unto_o wrath_n upon_o he_o that_o do_v evil_a and_o may_v praise_v they_o that_o do_v well_o therefore_o they_o be_v the_o person_n who_o have_v rule_v who_o be_v mean_v by_o power_n for_o such_o action_n be_v only_o of_o person_n it_o be_v not_o say_v the_o power_n that_o shall_v be_v but_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o power_n that_o be_v in_o be_v though_o by_o evil_a mean_n attain_v it_o and_o be_v that_o bear_v the_o sword_n not_o he_o only_o that_o aught_o to_o bear_v the_o sword_n but_o he_o that_o have_v it_o in_o possession_n though_o perhaps_o not_o right_o acquire_v nor_o be_v it_o say_v every_o soul_n be_v to_o be_v subject_a to_o the_o power_n that_o be_v such_o as_o they_o shall_v be_v but_o which_o be_v nor_o to_o be_v good_a ruler_n only_o but_o ruler_n nor_o he_o that_o use_v or_o bear_v it_o aright_o but_o he_o that_o bear_v the_o sword_n unto_o these_o the_o apostle_n require_v subjection_n of_o necessity_n v_o 5._o and_o that_o necessity_n he_o explain_v to_o be_v not_o only_o because_o they_o can_v inflict_v wrath_n or_o punishment_n as_o be_v express_v v_o 4._o but_o also_o for_o conscience_n sake_n that_o be_v as_o st._n peter_n speak_v 1_o pet._n 2._o 19_o for_o conscience_n towards_o god_n out_o of_o regard_n to_o god_n ordinance_n v_o 1_o 2._o who_o by_o his_o providence_n for_o man_n good_a set_v up_o and_o dispose_v of_o those_o power_n and_o also_o command_v they_o to_o be_v own_v as_o by_o his_o appointment_n for_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d signify_v precept_n as_o well_o as_o providence_n like_a as_o compound_v noun_n of_o the_o same_o theme_n do_v 1_o cor._n 9_o 14_o heb._n 11._o 23._o etc._n etc._n and_o to_o these_o power_n or_o ruler_n the_o apostle_n suppose_v the_o pay_v of_o tribute_n as_o the_o constant_a use_n of_o christian_n that_o then_o be_v and_o that_o of_o right_a for_o they_o be_v god_n minister_n or_o servant_n attend_v continual_o unto_o this_o self_n same_o thing_n that_o be_v their_o good_n v._n 4._o and_o therefore_o due_a to_o they_o as_o wage_n for_o their_o service_n to_o they_o and_o wage_n that_o god_n assign_v they_o as_o be_v his_o servant_n in_o keep_v peace_n order_n righteousness_n among_o man_n instead_o of_o god_n who_o claim_v this_o to_o be_v his_o office_n and_o substitute_n civil_a ruler_n to_o do_v it_o for_o he_o and_o to_o receive_v their_o tribute_n and_o custom_n as_o his_o receiver_n and_o therefore_o the_o apostle_n require_v v_o 7._o christian_n to_o render_v to_o all_o their_o due_n tribute_n to_o who_o tribute_n be_v due_a custom_n or_o toll_v to_o who_o custom_n be_v due_a fear_v to_o who_o fear_n belong_v honour_n to_o who_o honour_n appertain_v who_o the_o series_n of_o the_o context_n plain_o show_v to_o be_v the_o high_a power_n ruler_n that_o bear_v the_o sword_n which_o can_v be_v mean_v of_o no_o other_o than_o civil_a magistrate_n and_o governor_n such_o as_o emperor_n king_n senate_n and_o officer_n which_o either_o make_v or_o execuse_v law_n belong_v to_o the_o civil_a state_n now_o sure_a if_o subjection_n tribute_n or_o poll-mony_n custom_n or_o toll_n for_o commodity_n import_v or_o export_v fear_v or_o reverence_n of_o their_o person_n and_o authority_n and_o honour_n in_o respect_n of_o their_o preeminence_n and_o dignity_n be_v to_o be_v give_v to_o they_o than_o it_o be_v contrary_a to_o the_o apostle_n doctrine_n to_o teach_v disobedience_n contempt_n withdraw_a assistence_n from_o they_o the_o reason_n which_o the_o apostle_n give_v of_o subjection_n to_o power_n be_v also_o of_o much_o importance_n for_o the_o confirmation_n of_o the_o obligation_n that_o lie_v on_o christian_n to_o yield_v they_o obedience_n tribute_n fear_v of_o offend_v they_o and_o honour_n of_o their_o person_n and_o place_n 1._o because_o they_o be_v power_n now_o if_o there_o be_v no_o subjection_n they_o be_v not_o power_n 2._o they_o be_v high_a supreme_a or_o excel_v power_n therefore_o those_o over_o who_o they_o be_v be_v to_o be_v subject_a to_o they_o or_o order_v under_o they_o or_o else_o they_o usurp_v another_o place_n 3._o they_o be_v of_o god_n and_o what_o be_v of_o god_n shall_v be_v own_v not_o oppose_v 4._o they_o be_v ordain_v or_o order_v of_o god_n both_o by_o his_o wise_a providence_n dispose_v of_o such_o imparity_n that_o there_o may_v be_v good_a order_n in_o humane_a society_n if_o all_o be_v equal_n nothing_o soon_o bring_v confusion_n and_o hinder_v common_a good_a as_o be_v apparent_a in_o army_n from_o whence_o that_o word_n we_o translate_v ordain_v seem_v to_o be_v take_v all_o right_a order_n require_v first_o and_o last_o high_a and_o low_a without_o which_o no_o useful_a frame_n either_o artificial_a or_o natural_a can_v be_v erect_v or_o make_v and_o also_o by_o his_o holy_a and_o just_a command_n which_o require_v superior_n in_o place_n and_o power_n to_o be_v honour_v fear_v assist_v and_o serve_v by_o inferior_n 5._o hence_o the_o apostle_n infer_v that_o resistance_n of_o they_o be_v resist_v of_o god_n ordinance_n &_o therefore_o it_o must_v needs_o be_v a_o great_a sin_n not_o only_o to_o destroy_v they_o smite_v they_o but_o also_o to_o withstand_v their_o power_n or_o by_o contempt_n or_o subtraction_n of_o due_a aid_n or_o subsidy_n to_o weaken_v they_o or_o to_o provoke_v they_o to_o anger_n because_o it_o be_v contend_v against_o god_n 6._o the_o apostle_n upon_o the_o same_o reason_n denounce_v damnation_n or_o judgement_n from_o god_n on_o they_o that_o do_v resist_v for_o as_o it_o be_v the_o ordinance_n of_o god_n that_o be_v resist_v so_o be_v it_o the_o judgement_n or_o damnation_n of_o god_n which_o be_v threaten_v to_o be_v inflict_v in_o which_o respect_n as_o the_o word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d or_o jugment_v be_v use_v rom._n 3._o 8._o without_o mention_v god_n so_o it_o be_v express_v rom._n 2._o 2_o 3._o with_o mention_v of_o he_o 7._o subjection_n be_v further_o urge_v
lib._n 1._o c._n 6._o i_o rest_v on_o that_o on_o which_o after_o chrysostom_n cajetan_n isidor_n clarius_n aretius_n mountagu_n gataker_n and_o heinsius_n exercit_fw-la sacr_n lib._n 5._o c._n 13._o pitch_n that_o by_o reason_n of_o the_o confusion_n that_o then_o be_v in_o the_o government_n the_o high_a priest_n than_o not_o succeed_v according_o to_o the_o law_n of_o god_n in_o the_o family_n of_o aaron_n nor_o continue_v during_o life_n but_o by_o bribe_n and_o evil_a art_n be_v promote_v and_o remove_v by_o the_o king_n and_o governor_n at_o pleasure_n insomuch_o that_o as_o heinsius_n speak_v it_o be_v manifest_a there_o be_v then_o such_o anarchy_n that_o d●ily_o as_o it_o be_v they_o be_v and_o be_v not_o high_a priest_n beside_o paul_n long_a absence_n from_o jerusalem_n his_o unacquaintance_n with_o affair_n there_o especial_o in_o the_o government_n of_o the_o temple_n and_o council_n of_o the_o jew_n the_o place_n manner_n of_o sit_v habit_n not_o distinguish_v he_o from_o the_o rest_n it_o may_v well_o be_v conceive_v that_o he_o do_v not_o then_o distinct_o know_v ananias_n to_o be_v the_o high_a priest_n nor_o perhaps_o one_o of_o the_o council_n regular_o constitute_v though_o it_o be_v say_v v._n 1._o he_o earnest_o behold_v the_o council_n and_o it_o to_o i_o seem_v the_o more_o likely_a that_o he_o do_v not_o perceive_v he_o to_o be_v high_a priest_n because_o he_o direct_v his_o speech_n to_o they_o with_o the_o same_o compellation_n as_o he_o do_v act_n 22._o 1._o under_o the_o title_n of_o man_n and_o brethren_n without_o distinguish_v he_o from_o the_o rest_n or_o any_o respective_a speech_n to_o they_o as_o a_o regular_a court_n of_o justice_n but_o as_o a_o company_n gather_v together_o by_o the_o chief_a captain_n to_o accuse_v and_o examine_v he_o not_o to_o judge_v he_o which_o be_v the_o more_o likely_a by_o reason_n of_o what_o he_o do_v v._n 6._o in_o bespeak_v they_o under_o the_o title_n of_o man_n brethren_n and_o perceive_v they_o to_o be_v of_o different_a party_n he_o use_v art_n to_o set_v they_o at_o variance_n and_o to_o break_v up_o the_o assembly_n in_o a_o confuse_a manner_n which_o he_o will_v not_o have_v do_v have_v it_o be_v a_o court_n legal_o set_v however_o we_o determine_v of_o st._n paul_n knowledge_n of_o ananias_n it_o be_v clear_a that_o he_o do_v not_o impute_v his_o speech_n v._n 3._o to_o prophetic_a liberty_n as_o grotius_n imagine_v when_o he_o say_v in_o his_o annot._n on_o act_n 23._o 3._o utitur_fw-la jure_fw-la prophetae_fw-la nor_o justify_v it_o but_o correct_v it_o and_o impute_v it_o to_o his_o ignorance_n and_o add_v the_o command_n of_o the_o law_n exod._n 22._o 28._o for_o it_o be_v write_v thou_o shall_v not_o speak_v evil_a of_o the_o ruler_n of_o thy_o people_n follow_v therein_o the_o greek_a version_n the_o whole_a verse_n be_v thou_o shall_v not_o revile_v the_o god_n that_o be_v as_o be_v conceive_v judge_n or_o god_n nor_o curse_v the_o ruler_n of_o thy_o people_n which_o be_v allege_v by_o st._n paul_n as_o in_o force_n and_o apply_v to_o himself_o as_o thereby_o condemn_v his_o speech_n of_o opprobrious_a and_o threaten_a language_n if_o it_o be_v not_o excuse_v by_o his_o ignorance_n do_v plain_o prove_v that_o a_o ruler_n of_o the_o people_n though_o a_o ecclesiastic_a and_o climb_v to_o the_o place_n by_o indirect_a mean_n unrighteous_o judge_v oppose_v the_o truth_n the_o kingdom_n and_o apostle_n of_o christ_n yet_o shall_v not_o be_v revile_v or_o with_o menace_n terrify_v or_o curse_a but_o be_v in_o the_o possession_n of_o a_o ruler_n place_n be_v regard_v in_o word_n and_o action_n as_o a_o ruler_n to_o which_o i_o shall_v add_v some_o more_o passage_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n st._n paul_n allegation_n of_o this_o show_v that_o they_o be_v moral_a and_o still_o bind_a christian_n eccl._n 10._o 20._o curse_v not_o the_o king_n no_o not_o in_o thy_o thought_n or_o conscience_n and_o curse_v not_o the_o rich_a in_o thy_o bedchamber_n for_o a_o bird_n of_o the_o air_n shall_v carry_v the_o voice_n and_o that_o which_o have_v wing_n shall_v tell_v the_o matter_n eccles._n 8._o 2._o i_o counsel_v thou_o to_o keep_v the_o king_n commandment_n and_o that_o in_o regard_n of_o the_o oath_n of_o god_n out_o of_o all_o which_o i_o conclude_v that_o the_o minor_a of_o my_o argument_n be_v sufficient_o prove_v that_o the_o doctrine_n which_o commend_v and_o urge_v such_o disobedience_n vilify_a refuse_v assistance_n smite_v of_o power_n whether_o civil_a or_o ecclesiastical_a or_o military_a as_o th●_n word_n cite_v by_o i_o do_v be_v contrary_a to_o the_o precept_n of_o christ_n his_o holy_a apostle_n and_o other_o holy_a man_n in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n and_o consequent_o damnable_a and_o antichristian_a §_o 4._o the_o exception_n of_o fifth-monarchy-man_n and_o other_o against_o the_o first_o argument_n be_v refell_v against_o this_o argument_n which_o overthrow_v also_o the_o doctrine_n of_o jesuited_a pontifician_n and_o other_o opposer_n deposer_n and_o smiter_n of_o king_n and_o other_o ruler_n there_o be_v sundry_a exception_n take_v one_o exception_n be_v that_o those_o precept_n be_v for_o that_o time_n when_o the_o christian_n be_v unable_a to_o resist_v but_o this_o be_v prevent_v by_o the_o apostle_n word_n rom._n 13._o 5._o you_o must_v needs_o be_v subject_n not_o only_o for_o wrath_n but_o also_o for_o conscience_n sake_n another_o that_o these_o precept_n tie_v we_o to_o submit_v to_o these_o ruler_n and_o not_o to_o resist_v they_o till_o they_o cease_v to_o be_v ruler_n which_o they_o do_v when_o excommunicate_a deprive_v by_o the_o pope_n but_o if_o the_o pope_n be_v comprehend_v under_o every_o soul_n as_o chrysostom_n conceive_v even_o the_o apostle_n be_v than_o the_o pope_n himself_o be_v to_o be_v subject_a to_o ruler_n and_o consequent_o can_v depose_v they_o nor_o have_v the_o scripture_n give_v this_o power_n to_o the_o pope_n or_o man_n to_o depose_v they_o it_o be_v god_n prerogative_n as_o be_v say_v psal._n 75._o 7._o god_n be_v the_o judge_n he_o put_v down_o one_o and_o set_v up_o another_o another_o evasion_n be_v that_o subjection_n be_v require_v to_o ruler_n while_o they_o be_v a_o terror_n to_o evil_a work_n &_o not_o to_o good_a but_o not_o when_o they_o oppress_v be_v enemy_n to_o god_n people_n christ_n kingdom_n than_o they_o cease_v to_o be_v ruler_n but_o this_o be_v prevent_v by_o the_o apostle_n who_o say_v the_o power_n that_o be_v be_v ordain_v of_o god_n and_o therefore_o to_o they_o as_o they_o be_v subjection_n be_v to_o be_v give_v and_o resistance_n be_v forbid_v by_o s._n paul_n but_o the_o chief_a exception_n be_v that_o which_o p._n 51_o of_o the_o banner_n display_v be_v in_o these_o word_n now_o than_o we_o say_v that_o call_v the_o ordinance_n of_o god_n prove_v the_o ordinance_n of_o the_o devil_n and_o though_o the_o power_n of_o the_o great_a image_n may_v be_v take_v for_o the_o ordinance_n of_o god_n so_o long_o as_o they_o keep_v their_o pure_a civil_a and_o unmixed_a state_n so_o say_v paul_n the_o power_n that_o be_v i._n e._n the_o civil_a power_n of_o old_a rome_n though_o a_o bloody_a persecutor_n and_o devourer_n of_o the_o creation_n and_o god_n heritage_n be_v ordain_v of_o god_n yet_o when_o the_o power_n of_o rome_n adulterate_v from_o its_o pure_a civil_a state_n and_o become_v a_o mix_a antichristian_a state_n the_o beast_n and_o a_o whore_n than_o it_o be_v say_v of_o that_o beastly_a antichristian_a power_n that_o the_o dragon_n or_o satan_n give_v he_o his_o power_n and_o his_o seat_n and_o great_a authority_n and_o what_o then_o be_v this_o save_v the_o ordinance_n of_o hell_n to_o which_o i_o reply_v if_o i_o understand_v they_o aright_o this_o be_v their_o meaning_n that_o the_o power_n of_o the_o great_a image_n that_o be_v the_o king_n emperor_n and_o ruler_n of_o the_o world_n than_o cease_v to_o be_v god_n ordinance_n and_o become_v the_o ordinance_n of_o hell_n when_o that_o be_v fulfil_v which_o we_o read_v revel_v 13._o 2._o which_o they_o take_v for_o grant_v be_v when_o the_o empire_n of_o rome_n or_o the_o ten_o king_n that_o arise_v out_o of_o the_o division_n of_o it_o do_v give_v their_o power_n and_o strength_n as_o it_o be_v revel_v 17._o 13._o unto_o the_o beast_n mention_v v._n 11._o which_o it_o be_v without_o doubt_n with_o they_o to_o be_v the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n pretend_a supremacy_n dominion_n oecumenieal_v vicarship_n by_o which_o christian_n religion_n be_v corrupt_v mix_v with_o paganish_a and_o jewish_a rite_n and_o the_o ten_o king_n and_o their_o kingdom_n make_v dependent_a on_o the_o pope_n and_o consequent_o subjection_n and_o assistance_n be_v not_o due_a to_o the_o civil_a or_o ecclesiastical_a or_o military_a power_n or_o law_n that_o now_o
be_v be_v build_v or_o erect_v upon_o the_o old_a foundation_n of_o the_o four_o monarchy_n in_o this_o suppose_v mix_v estate_n but_o they_o be_v warrant_v and_o bind_v as_o be_v the_o stone_n express_v dan._n 2._o 34_o 44_o 45._o to_o smite_v destroy_v utter_o dissolve_v the_o power_n of_o the_o four_o monarchy_n which_o they_o conceive_v to_o be_v all_o the_o present_a in_o their_o person_n office_n law_n title_n privilege_n and_o whole_a constitution_n and_o to_o take_v to_o themselves_o all_o the_o power_n and_o dominion_n in_o the_o earth_n in_o order_n to_o the_o erect_n of_o the_o fifth-monarchy_n which_o they_o call_v christ_n visible_a kingdom_n upon_o earth_n now_o sure_o such_o a_o monstrous_a giantlike_a claim_n as_o this_o exceed_v any_o of_o the_o proud_a claim_n of_o nabuchadnezzar_n or_o any_o of_o the_o persian_a roman_a turkish_a monarch_n have_v need_n of_o very_o good_a card_n for_o it_o some_o unquestionable_a charter_n or_o grant_n of_o heaven_n especial_o when_o it_o so_o flat_o oppose_v such_o plain_a precept_n as_o i_o have_v allege_v to_o the_o contrary_a which_o unless_o they_o be_v prove_v to_o be_v relax_v or_o repeal_v by_o a_o divine_a sentence_n testify_v by_o some_o infallible_a evidence_n of_o miracle_n or_o otherwise_o such_o as_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n have_v do_v prove_v that_o this_o claim_n and_o the_o doctrine_n that_o teach_v such_o practice_n as_o they_o incite_v man_n to_o be_v from_o the_o devil_n himself_o who_o be_v the_o great_a abaddon_n or_o destroyer_n of_o the_o world_n sure_a christ_n when_o he_o bid_v his_o disciple_n teach_v man_n to_o observe_v all_o that_o he_o have_v command_v promise_v to_o be_v with_o they_o all_o day_n unto_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n matth._n 28._o 20._o and_o s._n paul_n when_o he_o thus_o wro●●_n to_o timothy_n 1_o epist._n ch_z 6._o 13_o 14._o i_o give_v thou_o charge_n in_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n who_o quicken_v all_o thing_n and_o before_o jesus_n christ_n who_o before_o pontius_n pilate_n witness_v the_o good_a confession_n that_o thou_o keep_v this_o commandment_n whereof_o prayer_n and_o thanksgiving_n for_o king_n and_o all_o that_o be_v in_o authority_n 1_o tim._n 2._o 1_o 2_o 3._o obedience_n to_o master_n 1_o tim._n 6._o 1._o be_v a_o part_n without_o spot_n unrebukeable_a until_o the_o appear_v of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n do_v conceive_v their_o command_n to_o be_v bind_v until_o christ_n second_o come_v and_o since_o he_o only_o have_v power_n to_o repeal_v release_v dispense_v with_o a_o law_n who_o have_v a_o power_n either_o legislative_a or_o declarative_a of_o law_n superior_a or_o equal_a to_o he_o who_o give_v or_o at_o first_o authoritative_o declare_v it_o it_o can_v be_v no_o less_o than_o pope-like_a or_o dictator-like_a arrogance_n in_o some_o person_n upon_o pretence_n of_o a_o peculiar_a revelation_n to_o they_o no_o way_n demonstrate_v but_o in_o a_o obscure_a claucular_a meeting_n for_o consultation_n imagine_v to_o be_v communicate_v to_o they_o determine_v that_o which_o st._n paul_n say_v be_v the_o ordinance_n of_o god_n to_o be_v the_o ordinance_n of_o hell_n because_o they_o say_v it_o and_o to_o exceed_v the_o pharisee_n in_o arrogance_n who_o our_o saviour_n charge_v with_o hypecrisie_n for_o make_v the_o commandment_n of_o god_n of_o none_o effect_v by_o their_o tradition_n though_o it_o be_v the_o tradition_n of_o their_o elder_n or_o chief_a rabbin_n or_o doctor_n matth._n 15._o 6_o 7._o this_o bid_a defiance_n to_o all_o the_o power_n of_o the_o earth_n and_o this_o take_n on_o they_o to_o make_v void_a so_o plain_a precept_n of_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n without_o any_o other_o proof_n than_o they_o bring_v be_v in_o my_o apprehension_n one_o of_o the_o great_a piece_n of_o pride_n and_o arrogancy_n that_o i_o have_v meet_v with_o and_o as_o great_a a_o delusion_n as_o i_o think_v this_o age_n have_v afford_v §_o 5._o supposition_n employ_v in_o the_o quinto-monarchians_a exception_n be_v show_v to_o be_v uncertain_a as_o those_o about_o the_o stone_n &_o its_o smite_v dan._n 2._o 34._o 44._o nevertheless_o let_v we_o examine_v what_o they_o say_v of_o which_o some_o thing_n be_v suppose_v some_o thing_n be_v infer_v the_o thing_n suppose_v and_o infer_v be_v these_o 1._o that_o the_o four_o kingdom_n mention_v dan._n 2._o and_o 7._o be_v the_o roman_a empire_n which_o i_o will_v not_o deny_v though_o there_o be_v not_o a_o few_o very_a learned_a man_n that_o take_v the_o four_o monarchy_n to_o be_v the_o empire_n of_o the_o successor_n of_o alexander_n the_o great_a and_o that_o upon_o such_o reason_n as_o may_v make_v sober_a man_n not_o too_o peremptory_a in_o the_o contrary_a opinion_n much_o less_o to_o make_v the_o future_a smite_v of_o it_o a_o article_n of_o faith_n and_o the_o visible_a kingdom_n of_o christ_n to_o succeed_v it_o 2._o that_o the_o kingdom_n mention_v to_o be_v set_v up_o dan._n 2._o 44._o shall_v be_v a_o external_a visible_a kingdom_n on_o earth_n which_o be_v yet_o more_o doubtful_a be_v more_o controvert_v among_o godly_a learned_a man_n and_o that_o upon_o such_o weighty_a consideration_n on_o both_o side_n as_o may_v make_v considerate_a man_n if_o not_o to_o suspend_v their_o judgement_n yet_o not_o too_o resolute_o to_o assert_v it_o nor_o obtrude_v it_o with_o such_o zeal_n as_o the_o quinto-monarchians_a do_v as_o a_o article_n of_o faith_n and_o build_v such_o mighty_a attempt_n commotion_n in_o the_o world_n and_o hope_n on_o so_o uncertain_a a_o foundation_n 3._o that_o in_o the_o day_n of_o these_o king_n must_v be_v mean_v at_o the_o end_n of_o the_o four_o monarchy_n when_o all_o the_o material_n of_o the_o image_n shall_v be_v break_v in_o piece_n and_o scatter_v so_o as_o no_o place_n be_v find_v for_o they_o whereas_o it_o be_v far_o more_o probable_a that_o it_o be_v set_v up_o when_o christ_n begin_v to_o preach_v the_o gospel_n as_o john_n baptist_n and_o our_o lord_n intimate_v when_o he_o invite_v man_n to_o repent_v and_o believe_v the_o gospel_n for_o the_o kingdom_n heaven_n be_v at_o hand_n very_o likely_a allude_v to_o those_o place_n in_o daniel_n ch_n 2._o 44._o in_o their_o day_n the_o god_n of_o heaven_n shall_v set_v up_o a_o kingdom_n which_o shall_v never_o be_v destroy_v and_o therefore_o call_v the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n to_o distinguish_v it_o from_o the_o kingdom_n of_o man_n set_v up_o by_o they_o not_o by_o the_o god_n of_o heaven_n whereto_o the_o like_a be_v dan._n 7._o 14._o and_o seem_v to_o be_v refer_v to_o the_o spiritual_a kingdom_n of_o christ_n which_o the_o saint_n of_o the_o most_o high_a do_v take_v as_o the_o author_n to_o the_o hebrew_n ch_z 12._o 28._o say_v wherefore_o we_o receive_v a_o kingdom_n which_o can_v be_v shake_v let_v we_o have_v or_o hold_v fast_o grace_n whereby_o we_o may_v serve_v god_n acceptable_o with_o reverence_n and_o godly_a fear_n which_o no_o man_n doubt_n to_o be_v mean_v of_o the_o receive_v the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n by_o faith_n in_o he_o upon_o the_o preach_a of_o the_o gospel_n 4._o there_o be_v a_o distinction_n make_v between_o the_o kingdom_n of_o the_o stone_n and_o the_o kingdom_n of_o the_o mountain_n as_o if_o they_o be_v either_o several_a kingdom_n or_o at_o least_o of_o several_a condition_n and_o qualification_n whereas_o the_o text_n do_v distinguish_v they_o no_o otherwise_o than_o in_o their_o extent_n not_o one_o spiritual_a the_o other_o visible_a &_o external_a the_o one_o the_o work_a kingdom_n the_o other_o the_o kingdom_n of_o glory_n 5._o that_o the_o stone_n which_o must_v do_v the_o smite_v and_o break_v work_n be_v not_o christ_n personal_a only_a but_o also_o christ_n mystical_a with_o his_o member_n or_o to_o use_v the_o word_n of_o mr._n tillinghast_n though_o this_o stone_n fundamental_o be_v christ_n himself_o yet_o consider_v as_o smite_v the_o great_a image_n it_o can_v be_v no_o other_o but_o christ_n mystical_a christ_n in_o his_o member_n but_o sure_a in_o this_o they_o be_v mistake_v this_o work_n be_v make_v in_o scripture_n christ_n own_o peculiar_a work_n matth._n 21._o 42_o 43_o 44._o jesus_n say_v unto_o they_o do_v you_o never_o read_v in_o the_o scripture_n the_o stone_n which_o the_o builder_n reject_v the_o same_o be_v become_v the_o head_n of_o the_o corner_n this_o be_v the_o lord_n do_v and_o it_o be_v marvellous_a in_o our_o eye_n therefore_o i_o say_v unto_o you_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n shall_v be_v take_v from_o you_o and_o give_v to_o a_o nation_n bring_v forth_o the_o fruit_n thereof_o and_o whosoever_o shall_v fall_v on_o this_o stone_n shall_v be_v break_v but_o on_o whosoever_o it_o shall_v fall_v it_o will_v grind_v he_o to_o powder_n or_o dash_v he_o to_o piece_n in_o which_o passage_n it_o be_v apparent_a that_o by_o the_o
kingdom_n of_o god_n which_o be_v to_o be_v conceive_v the_o same_o with_o that_o dan._n 2._o 44._o be_v mean_v the_o kingdom_n which_o be_v then_o among_o the_o jew_n which_o be_v no_o other_o than_o the_o spiritual_a kingdom_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o stone_n who_o work_n be_v to_o grind_v to_o powder_n or_o dash_v to_o piece_n which_o be_v to_o be_v conceive_v to_o be_v the_o same_o with_o the_o smite_v and_o break_v dan._n 1._o 34._o 44._o be_v that_o stone_n which_o be_v reject_v by_o the_o builder_n and_o shall_v become_v the_o head_n of_o the_o corner_n which_o be_v no_o other_o but_o christ_n personal_a who_o be_v crucify_v by_o the_o ruler_n of_o the_o jew_n but_o raise_v up_o from_o death_n and_o set_v at_o god_n right_a hand_n and_o so_o become_v the_o corner_n stone_n of_o god_n spiritual_a house_n or_o church_n as_o it_o be_v express_o expound_v by_o peter_n acts._n 4._o 11._o 1_o pet._n 2._o 4_o 5_o 6_o 7_o 8._o and_o of_o he_o it_o be_v say_v that_o he_o shall_v change_v our_o vile_a body_n that_o it_o may_v be_v fashion_v like_o unto_o his_o glorious_a body_n according_a to_o the_o work_n whereby_o he_o be_v able_a to_o subdue_v all_o thing_n unto_o himself_o philip._n 3._o 21._o 6._o it_o be_v suppose_v that_o this_o smite_v work_n shall_v be_v by_o military_a power_n or_o by_o fight_v whereas_o if_o the_o cut_n of_o the_o stone_n out_o of_o the_o mountain_n be_v the_o set_n up_o of_o the_o kingdom_n it_o must_v be_v without_o hand_n dan._n 2._o 34._o 44_o 45._o by_o the_o god_n of_o heaven_n and_o therefore_o to_o be_v do_v some_o other_o way_n as_o zech._n 4._o 6._o the_o return_n of_o the_o jew_n and_o their_o establish_n in_o their_o land_n under_o zerubbabel_n shall_v be_v not_o by_o might_n or_o army_n nor_o by_o power_n but_o by_o god_n spirit_n or_o as_o it_o be_v say_v isai._n 11._o 4._o of_o christ_n that_o he_o shall_v smite_v the_o earth_n with_o the_o rod_n of_o his_o mouth_n and_o with_o the_o breath_n of_o his_o lip_n shall_v he_o slay_v the_o wicked_a by_o his_o preach_v or_o by_o his_o angel_n or_o by_o his_o creature_n as_o by_o flame_a fire_n he_o may_v smite_v as_o when_o it_o be_v say_v 2_o thes._n 1._o 7_o 8_o 9_o 10._o the_o lord_n jesus_n shall_v be_v reveal_v from_o heaven_n with_o his_o mighty_a angel_n in_o flame_a fire_n take_v vengeance_n on_o they_o that_o know_v not_o god_n and_o that_o obey_v not_o the_o gospel_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n who_o shall_v be_v punish_v with_o everlasting_a destruction_n from_o the_o presence_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o the_o glory_n of_o his_o power_n when_o he_o shall_v come_v to_o be_v glorify_v in_o his_o saint_n and_o to_o be_v admire_v in_o all_o they_o that_o believe_v and_o thus_o shall_v gog_n and_o magog_n be_v smite_v revel_v 20._o 9_o when_o they_o shall_v go_v up_o on_o the_o breadth_n of_o the_o earth_n and_o compass_v the_o camp_n of_o the_o saint_n about_o and_o the_o belove_a city_n fire_n shall_v come_v down_o from_o god_n out_o of_o heaven_n and_o devour_v they_o by_o these_o and_o other_o mean_n the_o stone_n may_v smite_v the_o foot_n of_o the_o great_a image_n without_o sword_n and_o such_o like_a military_a weapon_n and_o fight_v and_o that_o be_v fulfil_v which_o be_v promise_v psal._n 2._o 9_o thou_o shall_v break_v they_o with_o a_o rod_n of_o iron_n thou_o shall_v dash_v they_o in_o piece_n like_o a_o potter_n vessel_n as_o he_o be_v describe_v revel_n 1._o 16._o that_o out_o of_o his_o mouth_n go_v a_o sharp_a two_o edge_a sword_n so_o he_o warn_v revel_v 2._o 16._o repent_v or_o else_o i_o will_v come_v unto_o thou_o quick_o and_o will_v fight_v against_o they_o with_o the_o sword_n of_o my_o mouth_n yea_o when_o it_o be_v promise_v v_o 26_o 27._o he_o that_o overcome_v and_o keep_v my_o work_n unto_o the_o end_n to_o he_o will_v i_o give_v power_n over_o the_o nation_n and_o he_o shall_v rule_v they_o with_o a_o rod_n of_o iron_n as_o the_o vessel_n of_o a_o potter_n shall_v they_o be_v break_v to_o shiver_n even_o as_o i_o receive_v of_o my_o father_n it_o be_v to_o be_v understand_v of_o their_o prayer_n as_o revel_v 6._o 10._o revel_v 8._o 4_o 5._o revel_v 11._o 5_o 6._o as_o james_n 5._o 17._o revel_v 12._o 11._o not_o of_o arm_n and_o army_n he_o that_o read_v revel_v 16_o and_o 19_o chapter_n wherein_o be_v foretell_v the_o destruction_n of_o the_o beast_n and_o the_o false_a prophet_n may_v see_v more_o reason_n to_o conceive_v that_o christ_n will_v do_v it_o by_o plague_n as_o god_n do_v the_o egyptian_n by_o moses_n or_o some_o other_o invisible_a way_n without_o the_o saint_n or_o if_o he_o use_v the_o saint_n he_o will_v do_v it_o by_o their_o prayer_n and_o testimony_n without_o other_o fight_n and_o therefore_o if_o it_o be_v grant_v that_o that_o with_o which_o the_o five_o kingdom_n do_v begin_v the_o work_n of_o the_o great_a image_n the_o overturning_a the_o throne_n of_o the_o king_n be_v to_o be_v perform_v by_o the_o saint_n as_o chief_a instrument_n in_o the_o mannagement_n of_o it_o yet_o it_o be_v not_o true_a which_o mr._n tillinghast_n say_v in_o his_o 3._o sermon_n p._n 65._o then_o it_o follow_v of_o necessity_n there_o must_v be_v such_o a_o thing_n as_o the_o civil_a and_o military_a power_n to_o be_v in_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o saint_n and_o that_o before_o the_o day_n of_o christ_n appearance_n they_o must_v have_v this_o power_n in_o their_o hand_n for_o the_o performance_n of_o that_o work_n so_o that_o notwithstanding_o this_o pretence_n it_o be_v evil_a and_o horrible_o wicked_a for_o they_o that_o have_v call_v themselves_o the_o saint_n and_o people_n of_o god_n to_o seek_v for_o it_o to_o pray_v for_o it_o to_o plead_v for_o it_o as_o the_o five_o monarchy_n man_n have_v do_v contrary_a to_o the_o plain_a precept_n of_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n seek_v for_o it_o by_o kill_v innocent_a man_n under_o pretence_n of_o pray_v to_o god_n and_o keep_v fast_n curse_v their_o governor_n and_o plead_v by_o revile_n and_o false_a accusation_n and_o most_o horrid_a perverting_n of_o holy_a scripture_n and_o self_n magnifying_n for_o a_o power_n not_o belong_v to_o they_o 7._o it_o be_v suppose_v that_o if_o the_o smite_v work_n be_v to_o be_v do_v by_o man_n it_o must_v be_v by_o saint_n in_o their_o notion_n but_o there_o be_v no_o proof_n of_o this_o or_o rather_o the_o word_n of_o scripture_n do_v plain_o tell_v we_o that_o the_o work_n be_v to_o be_v do_v by_o those_o king_n which_o they_o conceive_v they_o shall_v destroy_v as_o antichristian_a in_o order_n to_o the_o set_n up_o of_o the_o five_o monarchy_n for_o thus_o we_o read_v revel_v 17._o 16_o 17._o and_o the_o ten_o horn_n which_o thou_o see_v upon_o the_o beast_n these_o shall_v hate_v the_o whore_n and_o shall_v make_v her_o desolate_a and_o naked_a and_o shall_v eat_v her_o flesh_n and_o burn_v she_o with_o fire_n for_o god_n have_v put_v in_o their_o heart_n to_o fulfil_v his_o will_n and_o to_o agree_v and_o give_v their_o kingdom_n unto_o the_o beast_n until_o the_o word_n of_o god_n shall_v be_v fulfil_v so_o that_o whereas_o these_o man_n imagine_v such_o a_o inconsistency_n with_o god_n purpose_n and_o glory_n to_o use_v the_o king_n and_o government_n which_o have_v support_v the_o whore_n of_o babylon_n for_o her_o ruin_n and_o therefore_o incite_v man_n to_o such_o hatred_n and_o enmity_n against_o they_o and_o with_o much_o disdain_n stomach_n and_o bitter_a zeal_n not_o know_v what_o spirit_n they_o be_v of_o do_v vilify_v inveigh_v against_o and_o curse_v they_o and_o seek_v their_o total_a abolition_n glory_v like_o frantic_a man_n in_o their_o own_o satanical_a spirit_n and_o design_n they_o shall_v rather_o endeavour_v to_o do_v such_o thing_n as_o may_v make_v prince_n favour_v they_o and_o hate_v the_o whore_n and_o rather_o admire_v bless_v and_o magnify_v the_o providence_n and_o work_n of_o god_n in_o use_v they_o as_o instrument_n to_o pull_v she_o down_o who_o predecessor_n out_o of_o their_o blind_a devotion_n set_v up_o the_o whore_n and_o to_o protect_v the_o servant_n of_o god_n who_o be_v by_o their_o ancestor_n destroy_v 8._o it_o be_v suppose_v that_o this_o smite_v work_n be_v to_o be_v do_v by_o gentile_a saint_n who_o be_v such_o as_o they_o have_v characterise_v they_o but_o this_o have_v no_o evidence_n to_o prove_v it_o for_o though_o i_o will_v not_o exclude_v the_o gentile_a saint_n from_o be_v mean_v dan._n 7._o 18._o 21_o 22_o 25_o 27._o yet_o it_o be_v very_o probable_a which_o junius_n piscator_fw-la and_o other_o observe_v that_o by_o saint_n in_o those_o place_n be_v special_o mean_v the_o jewish_a people_n
occur_v about_o land_n will_n trade_n and_o other_o action_n which_o concern_v human_a affair_n and_o society_n yea_o they_o that_o have_v peruse_v the_o talmud_n and_o write_n of_o the_o jewish_a doctor_n do_v find_v that_o notwithstanding_o the_o body_n of_o law_n give_v by_o god_n himself_o yet_o by_o reason_n of_o the_o vary_a of_o case_n many_o resolution_n there_o be_v add_v by_o their_o judge_n or_o lawyer_n which_o they_o receive_v as_o law_n and_o this_o be_v think_v so_o necessary_a that_o god_n erect_v a_o senate_n among_o they_o with_o strict_a injunction_n to_o the_o jew_n to_o do_v according_a to_o the_o sentence_n which_o they_o of_o that_o place_n which_o the_o lord_n shall_v choose_v shall_v show_v they_o and_o to_o observe_v to_o do_v according_a to_o all_o that_o they_o inform_v they_o deut._n 17._o 10._o which_o be_v in_o effect_n all_o one_o as_o to_o empower_v they_o to_o make_v law_n for_o they_o sure_o notwithstanding_o the_o write_a law_n of_o moses_n solomon_n have_v be_v at_o a_o stand_v how_o to_o give_v sentence_n in_o the_o case_n of_o the_o two_o harlot_n have_v not_o god_n give_v he_o a_o extraordinary_a spirit_n of_o wisdom_n to_o do_v judgement_n 1_o king_n 3._o 28._o nor_o can_v the_o moysaicall_a or_o jewish_a law_n fit_v the_o government_n of_o this_o nation_n unless_o there_o be_v the_o same_o distribution_n of_o land_n the_o same_o state_n of_o people_n and_o neighbour_n nation_n the_o same_o manner_n of_o trade_n and_o live_v as_o they_o have_v and_o it_o be_v to_o be_v consider_v whether_o this_o assert_v of_o the_o law_n of_o the_o jew_n as_o a_o constant_a stand_a rule_n to_o we_o gentile_n be_v not_o indeed_o the_o same_o error_n of_o judaisme_n which_o be_v condemn_v by_o the_o synod_n at_o jerusalem_n act_v 15._o and_o the_o write_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o count_v as_o a_o heresy_n which_o do_v evacuate_v the_o benefit_n of_o our_o christian_a liberty_n which_o christ_n have_v purchase_v by_o lose_v of_o which_o we_o may_v forfeit_v our_o interest_n in_o christ_n and_o their_o law_n be_v so_o far_o from_o be_v the_o only_a law_n fit_a for_o the_o government_n of_o christ_n kingdom_n that_o they_o may_v in_o many_o thing_n be_v most_o unfit_a and_o contention_n for_o they_o to_o be_v impose_v on_o gentile_a beliver_v more_o just_o to_o be_v count_v antichristian_a than_o the_o civil_a law_n of_o the_o nation_n which_o they_o so_o much_o oppose_v as_o antiehristian_a nor_o can_v those_o law_n be_v fit_v for_o the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n which_o they_o look_v for_o for_o that_o kingdom_n will_v be_v when_o all_o christ_n enemy_n shall_v be_v make_v his_o footstool_n christ_n shall_v personal_o reign_v as_o they_o conceive_v on_o earth_n it_o shall_v be_v a_o kingdom_n which_o shall_v have_v a_o s●at_n s●nless_a sorrowless_a deathless_a superiorless_a have_v no_o humane_a rule_v majesty_n no_o church_n censure_n no_o superiority_n of_o person_n no_o fear_n no_o want_n no_o desertion_n no_o painful_a labour_n no_o decay_n no_o procreation_n of_o child_n as_o dr._n homes_n reckon_v they_o in_o his_o resurrection_n reveal_v lib._n 5._o c._n 4._o and_o therefore_o this_o supposition_n and_o the_o inference_n that_o be_v make_v thereupon_o be_v false_a and_o insufficient_a and_o it_o will_v be_v not_o only_o a_o sin_n against_o god_n but_o also_o a_o most_o extreme_a degree_n of_o wickedness_n to_o destroy_v our_o law_n record_n government_n upon_o this_o pretence_n and_o all_o man_n be_v true_o bind_v in_o conscience_n to_o defend_v they_o and_o to_o oppose_v those_o as_o antichristian_a and_o enemy_n to_o christ_n kingdom_n who_o will_v disannul_v they_o as_o for_o the_o commonwealth_n of_o israel_n its_o be_v the_o only_a type_n of_o the_o lamb_n government_n gal._n 6._o 16._o it_o be_v so_o in_o respect_n of_o the_o spiritual_a kingdom_n of_o christ_n in_o which_o believer_n be_v a_o holy_a priesthood_n to_o offer_v up_o spiritual_a sacrifice_n acceptable_a to_o god_n through_o jesus_n christ_n a_o royal_a priesthood_n to_o show_v forth_o god_n praise_n 1_o pet._n 2._o 5._o 9_o and_o if_o this_o reason_n be_v of_o validity_n to_o tie_v we_o to_o their_o law_n it_o will_v tie_v we_o to_o the_o law_n about_o the_o jewish_a temple_n priesthood_n sacrifice_n and_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o ceremonial_a law_n which_o be_v to_o reduce_v we_o from_o christ_n to_o moses_n and_o complete_a judaisme_n as_o than_o it_o be_v a_o precious_a benefit_n which_o the_o gospel_n bring_v that_o the_o gentile_n be_v not_o tie_v to_o those_o particular_a law_n of_o religious_a service_n which_o be_v require_v of_o the_o jew_n that_o the_o yoke_n be_v not_o put_v upon_o the_o neck_n of_o the_o disciple_n which_o neither_o the_o father_n nor_o the_o apostle_n be_v able_a to_o bear_v act_n 15._o 10._o but_o that_o many_o thing_n even_o in_o god_n worship_n be_v to_o be_v determine_v by_o prudence_n of_o ruler_n according_a as_o might_n best_o fit_v the_o service_n of_o god_n with_o respect_n to_o the_o condition_n of_o several_a people_n so_o much_o more_o in_o civil_a affair_n it_o be_v the_o great_a goodness_n of_o god_n and_o a_o great_a advantage_n to_o the_o further_a of_o christ_n kingdom_n among_o the_o gentile_n that_o the_o gospel_n do_v not_o impose_v on_o the_o nation_n either_o the_o moysaicall_a or_o any_o other_o particular_a law_n or_o civil_a government_n but_o leave_v they_o to_o their_o own_o law_n and_o government_n in_o such_o thing_n and_o require_v christian_n to_o submit_v to_o they_o without_o which_o there_o be_v no_o likelihood_n christianity_n have_v be_v embrace_v as_o it_o be_v nor_o christian_n to_o have_v subsist_v and_o be_v multiply_v among_o infidel_n as_o they_o be_v and_o therefore_o whereas_o the_o quinto-monarchians_a have_v make_v such_o great_a stir_n as_o they_o have_v do_v not_o only_o for_o a_o reformation_n in_o ecclesiastical_a discipline_n and_o worship_n but_o also_o to_o bring_v the_o government_n and_o law_n civil_a to_o the_o jewish_a platform_n in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n which_o be_v their_o diana_n they_o have_v therein_o follow_v their_o own_o fancy_n not_o the_o holy_a scripture_n but_o to_o the_o great_a wrong_n of_o the_o church_n of_o god_n and_o injury_n to_o his_o name_n and_o truth_n cause_v many_o to_o follow_v their_o pernicious_a way_n by_o reason_n of_o who_o the_o way_n of_o truth_n be_v evil_a speak_v of_o so_o that_o of_o they_o may_v be_v verify_v which_o we_o read_v rom._n 3._o 14_o 15_o 10_o 17._o their_o mouth_n be_v full_a of_o curse_v and_o bitterness_n their_o foot_n be_v swift_a to_o shed_v blood_n destruction_n and_o misery_n be_v in_o their_o way_n and_o the_o way_n of_o peace_n have_v they_o not_o know_v 11._o it_o be_v grant_v by_o they_o that_o the_o power_n of_o the_o great_a image_n may_v be_v take_v for_o the_o ordinance_n of_o god_n so_o long_o as_o they_o keep_v their_o pure_a civil_a and_o unmixed_a estate_n so_o say_v paul_n the_o power_n that_o be_v i._n e._n the_o civil_a power_n of_o old_a rome_n though_o a_o bloody_a persecutor_n and_o devourer_n of_o the_o creation_n and_o god_n heritage_n be_v ordain_v of_o god_n in_o which_o passage_n they_o intimate_v 1._o that_o the_o civil_a power_n of_o old_a rome_n be_v a_o bloody_a persecutor_n and_o devourer_n of_o the_o creation_n and_o god_n heritage_n 2._o that_o then_o they_o keep_v their_o pure_a civil_a and_o unmixed_a estate_n 3._o that_o so_o long_o though_o they_o be_v the_o power_n of_o the_o great_a image_n yet_o they_o may_v be_v take_v for_o the_o ordinance_n of_o god_n according_a to_o st._n paul_n rom._n 13._o 1._o 4._o that_o therefore_o so_o long_o they_o be_v to_o be_v obey_v and_o not_o resist_v for_o discovery_n of_o the_o fallacy_n that_o be_v in_o these_o speech_n it_o be_v needful_a that_o it_o shall_v be_v inquire_v into_o what_o they_o mean_v by_o the_o civil_a power_n of_o old_a rome_n keep_v their_o pure_a civil_a and_o unmixed_a estate_n the_o opposite_a estate_n be_v thus_o express_v when_o the_o power_n of_o rome_n adulterate_v from_o its_o pure_a civil_a state_n become_v a_o mix_a antichristian_a state_n the_o beast_n and_o a_o whore_n the_o power_n of_o rome_n be_v in_o the_o apostle_n paul_n time_n the_o power_n of_o the_o emperor_n whether_o caius_n caligula_n claudius_n nero_n and_o the_o senate_n and_o consul_n of_o rome_n the_o praetor_n king_n precedent_n such_o as_o herod_n agrippa_n pilate_n felix_n festus_n and_o other_o under_o they_o the_o unmixed_a estate_n seem_v to_o be_v their_o not_o take_v upon_o they_o that_o which_o after_o the_o emperor_n or_o pope_n do_v when_o they_o become_v antichristian_a now_o sure_o what_o ever_o it_o be_v that_o after_o the_o civil_a power_n of_o rome_n assume_v or_o do_v it_o be_v certain_a that_o they_o be_v as_o it_o be_v
confess_v the_o power_n of_o the_o great_a image_n bloody_a persecutor_n and_o devourer_n of_o the_o creation_n and_o god_n heritage_n and_o i_o may_v add_v as_o wicked_a and_o impure_a in_o their_o life_n as_o they_o be_v afterward_o yea_o and_o as_o monstrous_o idolatrous_a as_o afterward_o the_o emperor_n than_o take_v to_o themselves_o the_o title_n of_o pontifex_n maximus_n which_o be_v keep_v till_o the_o christian_a emperor_n time_n and_o that_o title_n import_v their_o power_n and_o inspection_n about_o the_o idolatrous_a rite_n of_o the_o roman_n whereby_o they_o take_v charge_n of_o the_o worship_n of_o jupiter_n and_o other_o roman_a deity_n and_o be_v zealous_a for_o it_o so_o as_o to_o persecute_v they_o to_o death_n with_o extreme_a cruelty_n who_o will_v not_o offer_v incense_n to_o their_o idol_n nor_o swear_v by_o they_o yea_o they_o do_v some_o of_o they_o urge_v jew_n and_o other_o people_n to_o worship_n either_o themselves_o or_o their_o statue_n as_o god_n as_o caligula_n domitian_n and_o cause_v the_o abomination_n and_o desolation_n speak_v of_o by_o daniel_n the_o prophet_n to_o stand_v in_o the_o holy_a place_n of_o which_o our_o saviour_n foretell_v matth._n 24._o 15._o and_o though_o the_o popish_a idolatry_n in_o the_o worship_v of_o the_o host_n bow_v down_o to_o crucifix_n image_n pray_v to_o decease_a saint_n creep_v to_o cross_n adore_v of_o relic_n and_o other_o superstition_n of_o the_o romanist_n be_v horrible_o impious_a and_o their_o cruelty_n in_o destroy_v they_o that_o will_v not_o adore_v their_o consecrate_a host_n be_v very_o satanical_a and_o so_o their_o power_n and_o the_o exercise_n of_o it_o whereby_o they_o take_v on_o they_o to_o condemn_v as_o heretic_n they_o that_o will_v not_o worship_v their_o idol_n and_o whereby_o prince_n at_o their_o beck_n do_v execute_v their_o sentence_n cruel_o be_v from_o satan_n or_o the_o dragon_n in_o the_o use_n of_o it_o in_o these_o thing_n yet_o it_o be_v doubt_v whether_o the_o popish_a idolatry_n be_v great_a or_o so_o bad_a as_o the_o heathenish_a idolatry_n of_o the_o roman_n in_o st._n paul_n time_n yea_o dr._n john_n burges_n in_o his_o answer_n rejoin_v to_o the_o reply_n to_o dr._n morton_n defence_n of_o the_o ceremony_n ch_n 4._o sect_n 28._o have_v maintain_v against_o mr._n parker_n that_o the_o popish_a idolatry_n be_v not_o as_o vile_a in_o itself_o as_o ever_o be_v any_o of_o turk_n or_o pagan_n and_o it_o be_v plain_a that_o in_o the_o revelation_n the_o power_n of_o the_o emperor_n as_o they_o use_v it_o in_o persecution_n of_o christian_n for_o not_o worship_v idol_n be_v ascribe_v to_o the_o devil_n before_o the_o pretend_a mix_a antichristian_a state_n as_o well_o as_o after_o revel_v 2._o 10._o behold_v the_o devil_n shall_v cast_v some_o of_o you_o into_o prison_n when_o he_o do_v it_o by_o the_o pagan_a emperor_n and_o their_o officer_n v_o 13._o i_o know_v thy_o work_n and_o where_o thou_o dwell_v even_o where_o satan_n throne_n be_v and_o thou_o hold_v fast_v my_o name_n and_o have_v not_o deny_v my_o faith_n even_o in_o those_o day_n wherein_o antipas_n be_v my_o faithful_a martyr_n who_o be_v slay_v among_o you_o where_o satan_n dwell_v on_o which_o say_v brightman_n it_o be_v not_o obscure_v why_o it_o be_v call_v the_o throne_n of_o satan_n for_o the_o city_n where_o the_o heathen_a emperor_n have_v their_o seat_n who_o profess_o war_v against_o the_o lamb_n be_v call_v the_o throne_n of_o the_o dragon_n ch_n 13._o 2._o so_o of_o the_o daughter_n and_o low_a city_n those_o which_o come_v near_a to_o the_o mind_n of_o this_o prince_n because_o they_o yield_v a_o palace_n more_o prepare_v for_o the_o devil_n be_v notify_v by_o the_o same_o name_n and_o revel_v 12._o 3._o where_o it_o be_v say_v behold_v a_o great_a red_a dragon_n have_v seven_o head_n &_o ten_o horn_n &_o seven_o crown_n upon_o his_o head_n on_z its_z say_v mede_n a_o wonder_n or_o representation_n of_o the_o empire_n of_o rome_n heathen_a worship_v the_o dragon_n the_o large_a annotation_n on_o the_o bible_n a_o great_a red_a dragon_n the_o heathen_a roman_a emperor_n succeed_v one_o another_o who_o do_v the_o devil_n service_n as_o in_o other_o thing_n so_o chief_o in_o persecute_v the_o church_n v._n 9_o ch_n 2._o 10._o the_o like_a if_o need_n be_v may_v be_v show_v to_o be_v the_o opinion_n of_o brightman_n diodat●_n pareus_n piscator_fw-la and_o other_o by_o which_o and_o many_o other_o passage_n in_o holy_a scripture_n it_o may_v appear_v that_o the_o heathen_a emperor_n have_v that_o power_n whereby_o they_o persecute_v the_o church_n of_o christ_n from_o satan_n and_o be_v as_o great_a idolater_n as_o those_o under_o the_o papacy_n and_o be_v as_o serviceable_a to_o the_o devil_n and_o yet_o be_v grant_v to_o be_v the_o ordinance_n of_o god_n and_o though_o the_o power_n of_o the_o great_a image_n even_o the_o iron_n leg_n yet_o be_v not_o to_o be_v resist_v but_o the_o saint_n even_o every_o soul_n the_o holy_a apostle_n themselves_o not_o except_v be_v to_o be_v subject_a to_o they_o under_o pain_n of_o damnation_n whence_o it_o follow_v that_o there_o be_v no_o warrant_n for_o english_a pretend_v or_o real_a saint_n to_o smite_v the_o present_a power_n to_o oppose_v resist_v overthrow_v the_o present_a law_n government_n and_o governor_n though_o it_o be_v yield_v which_o be_v not_o that_o they_o be_v part_n of_o the_o four_o monarchy_n keep_v not_o their_o pure_a civil_a and_o unmixed_a state_n be_v oppressor_n shed_v the_o blood_n of_o the_o saint_n and_o what_o ever_o else_o the_o quinto-monarchians_a do_v object_n against_o they_o doubtless_o however_o sir_n walter_n raleigh_n have_v aggravate_v the_o cruelty_n of_o king_n henry_n the_o 8_o of_o england_n and_o perhaps_o other_o may_v represent_v in_o the_o most_o odious_a manner_n the_o government_n of_o other_o prince_n yet_o they_o exceed_v not_o nero_n domitian_n and_o other_o of_o the_o roman_a heathen_a emperor_n in_o cruelty_n to_o the_o christian_a believer_n nor_o in_o uncleanness_n and_o unrighteousness_n and_o yet_o st._n paul_n and_o st._n peter_n and_o our_o lord_n christ_n himself_o command_v subjection_n even_o to_o such_o and_o therefore_o these_o thing_n can_v release_v the_o quinto-monarchians_a from_o subjection_n but_o their_o plea_n for_o their_o smite_v work_n be_v prove_v to_o be_v damnable_a and_o antichristian_a 12._o it_o be_v suppose_v when_o the_o power_n of_o rome_n be_v adulterate_v from_o its_o pure_a civil_a state_n and_o become_v a_o mix_a antichristian_a state_n the_o beast_n and_o a_o whore_n which_o they_o conceive_v of_o the_o present_a civil_a power_n of_o the_o nation_n even_o the_o protestant_n and_o particular_o those_o of_o england_n than_o it_o be_v say_v of_o that_o beastly_a antichristian_a power_n that_o the_o dragon_n or_o satan_n give_v he_o his_o power_n &_o his_o seat_n and_o great_a authority_n and_o what_o then_o be_v this_o save_v the_o ordinance_n of_o hell_n to_o examine_v this_o it_o be_v to_o be_v observe_v 1._o that_o they_o suppose_v it_o be_v the_o civil_a power_n of_o rome_n which_o be_v mean_v revel_v 13._o 1._o 2._o by_o the_o beast_n and_o that_o it_o be_v mean_v of_o the_o civil_a power_n since_o they_o become_v in_o name_n christian._n which_o i_o will_v not_o gainsay_v because_o of_o the_o word_n of_o the_o angel_n revel_v 17._o 12._o and_o the_o ten_o horn_n which_o thou_o see_v be_v ten_o king_n which_o have_v receive_v no_o kingdom_n as_o yet_o but_o receive_v power_n as_o king_n one_o hour_n with_o the_o beast_n though_o there_o be_v or_o have_v be_v that_o understand_v by_o it_o heathen_a emperor_n afore_o they_o embrace_v christianity_n or_o a_o emperor_n not_o yet_o extant_a that_o i_o may_v omit_v other_o conjecture_n and_o therefore_o this_o be_v not_o to_o be_v take_v as_o so_o certain_a that_o on_o it_o shall_v be_v ground_v so_o strange_a a_o work_n as_o the_o smite_v of_o all_o the_o civil_a power_n of_o europe_n which_o be_v deduce_v from_o it_o 2._o it_o be_v suppose_v that_o then_o the_o civil_a power_n be_v adulterate_v from_o their_o pure_a civil_a and_o unmixed_a estate_n by_o pure_a civil_a and_o unmixed_a estate_n they_o must_v mean_v if_o i_o be_v not_o mistake_v that_o afore_o that_o time_n the_o roman_a emperor_n do_v not_o meddle_v with_o the_o matter_n of_o religion_n or_o of_o the_o church_n which_o be_v most_o notorious_o false_a for_o they_o take_v the_o title_n of_o pontifex_n maximus_n rule_v in_o the_o business_n of_o the_o worship_n of_o their_o god_n do_v forbid_v christian_a worship_n and_o persecute_v christian_n to_o the_o death_n and_o that_o they_o do_v afterward_o which_o be_v also_o false_a for_o the_o emperor_n christian_n do_v reject_v that_o title_n and_o demolish_v the_o temple_n of_o idol_n promote_v the_o christian_a worship_n contend_v
power_n and_o authority_n give_v by_o satan_n be_v to_o speak_v great_a thing_n and_o blasphemy_n and_o to_o make_v war_n with_o the_o saint_n and_o again_o of_o the_o two_o horn_a beast_n v_o 12._o it_o be_v say_v that_o he_o exercise_v all_o the_o power_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d of_o the_o first_o beast_n before_o he_o and_o cause_v the_o earth_n and_o they_o that_o dwell_v therein_o to_o worship_v the_o first_o beast_n who_o deadly_a wound_n be_v heal_v which_o can_v be_v understand_v of_o legal_a power_n such_o as_o we_o be_v require_v to_o be_v subject_a to_o but_o such_o wicked_a and_o unrighteous_a power_n as_o be_v use_v in_o require_v adoration_n of_o idol_n and_o urge_v it_o either_o by_o mere_a force_n without_o any_o law_n or_o by_o devellish_a act_n to_o entice_v man_n thereto_o which_o be_v in_o the_o roman_a heathen_a emperor_n from_o satan_n who_o be_v say_v to_o cast_v the_o christian_n into_o prison_n revel_v 2._o 10._o by_o stir_v up_o the_o pagan_a emperor_n and_o their_o subordinate_a ruler_n to_o do_v it_o and_o yet_o their_o civil_a power_n as_o be_v confess_v be_v the_o ordinance_n of_o god_n 6._o it_o be_v suppose_v that_o then_o when_o the_o power_n of_o the_o great_a image_n or_o old_a rome_n become_v a_o mix_a antichristian_a estate_n and_o not_o before_o they_o become_v the_o ordinance_n of_o hell_n to_o which_o there_o be_v no_o subjection_n due_a but_o they_o do_v not_o tell_v we_o when_o this_o be_v nor_o can_v tell_v and_o be_v it_o not_o then_o blind_a fury_n that_o hurry_v man_n to_o such_o frantic_a determination_n as_o to_o date_n the_o relaxation_n of_o so_o plain_a a_o precept_n as_o that_o rom._n 13._o 1._o be_v from_o such_o a_o time_n as_o they_o know_v not_o when_o it_o begin_v and_o to_o infer_v thence_o a_o warrant_n for_o some_o suppose_v themselves_o saint_n upon_o no_o better_a evidence_n than_o their_o conceit_n of_o god_n revelation_n of_o this_o by_o his_o spirit_n from_o his_o word_n to_o attempt_v the_o smite_v of_o all_o the_o power_n of_o the_o great_a image_n civil_a and_o ecclesiastical_a who_o derivation_n be_v from_o rome_n other_o not_o except_v nor_o free_v the_o kingdom_n of_o the_o romish_a iron_n leg_n or_o the_o roman_a kingdom_n divide_v into_o the_o eastern_a and_o western_a monarchy_n wherein_o the_o whole_a dominion_n power_n and_o monarchy_n of_o the_o ottoman_a family_n or_o that_o of_o the_o turk_n be_v comprehend_v and_o the_o beast_n ten_o horn_n or_o antichrist_n civil_a power_n equivalent_a to_o the_o ten_o toe_n and_o also_o the_o little_a horn_n together_o with_o all_o power_n whatsoever_o that_o shall_v be_v find_v opposer_n of_o the_o lord_n kingdom_n whether_o they_o be_v of_o the_o golden_a babylonish_n silver_n persian_a brazen_a grecian_a or_o iron_n roman_n dan._n 2._o and_o ch_n 7._o revel_v 13._o comprehend_v the_o whole_a kingdom_n of_o antichrist_n in_o the_o civil_a and_o ecclesiastical_a part_n thereof_o make_v up_o of_o person_n and_o thing_n though_o they_o grant_v that_o some_o of_o these_o be_v the_o ordinance_n of_o god_n to_o who_o every_o soul_n be_v to_o be_v subject_n and_o those_o only_a to_o cease_v to_o be_v to_o who_o the_o dragon_n give_v his_o power_n revel_v 13._o 2._o which_o who_o they_o be_v and_o when_o this_o power_n be_v give_v by_o the_o dragon_n they_o be_v not_o able_a to_o give_v any_o assurance_n of_o 7._o it_o be_v suppose_v that_o the_o civil_a power_n now_o even_o in_o this_o nation_n be_v a_o mix_a antichristian_a state_n and_o that_o their_o power_n be_v from_o the_o dragon_n since_o this_o mixture_n though_o not_o before_o but_o with_o what_o colour_n can_v they_o make_v those_o power_n antichristian_a who_o do_v maintain_v the_o faith_n of_o christ_n to_o have_v their_o power_n from_o rome_n who_o have_v deny_v obedience_n to_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n to_o be_v a_o mix_a antichristian_a state_n who_o cause_n their_o subject_n to_o abjure_v the_o pope_n supremacy_n to_o have_v their_o power_n from_o the_o dragon_n who_o do_v by_o their_o law_n &_o the_o execution_n of_o they_o pull_v down_o the_o worship_n of_o idol_n and_o punish_v with_o death_n diabolical_a art_n quarrel_n perhaps_o be_v against_o the_o king_n supremacy_n over_o ecclesiastical_a person_n and_o in_o ecclesiastical_a cause_n as_o if_o it_o make_v a_o mix_a antichristian_a state_n so_o as_o that_o what_o be_v deny_v to_o the_o pope_n be_v give_v to_o the_o king_n but_o this_o objection_n be_v so_o full_o answer_v by_o dr._n john_n rainold_n in_o his_o conference_n with_o hart_n the_o jesuit_n in_o the_o tower_n ch_z 10._o that_o hart_n himself_o be_v satisfy_v that_o it_o be_v not_o so_o perhaps_o some_o other_o imagine_v that_o in_o the_o make_n of_o bishop_n there_o be_v a_o adulterate_n of_o the_o pure_a civil_a power_n and_o a_o antichristian_a mixture_n of_o civil_a and_o ecclesiastical_a power_n but_o this_o also_o be_v but_o a_o mistake_n that_o which_o be_v mere_o ecclesiastical_a therein_o be_v leave_v to_o ecclesiastique_n to_o do_v yet_o be_v it_o grant_v there_o be_v some_o mixture_n of_o civil_a and_o ecclesiastical_a power_n that_o this_o shall_v make_v the_o civil_a power_n antichristian_a be_v without_o all_o reason_n affirm_v be_v the_o father_n of_o the_o family_n or_o the_o first-born_a son_n both_o ruler_n oeconomical_a and_o priest_n to_o offer_v sacrifice_n melchizedec_n a_o king_n and_o a_o priest_n david_n a_o king_n and_o a_o prophet_n therefore_o antichristian_a will_v they_o count_v all_o preacher_n who_o be_v master_n and_o parent_n and_o husband_n by_o reason_n of_o this_o conjunction_n of_o these_o different_a function_n in_o their_o person_n therefore_o antichrian_a be_v not_o or_o have_v not_o there_o be_v many_o of_o they_o who_o perhaps_o have_v be_v of_o the_o fraternity_n of_o the_o quinto-monarchians_a themselves_o who_o have_v have_v command_n in_o the_o army_n and_o yet_o have_v be_v preacher_n yea_o take_v upon_o they_o to_o be_v elder_n in_o the_o church_n and_o to_o have_v have_v ordination_n by_o lay_v on_o of_o hand_n who_o yet_o have_v not_o be_v judge_v by_o reason_n of_o this_o mixture_n antichristian_a be_v not_o then_o these_o man_n very_o partial_a who_o condemn_v that_o in_o one_o which_o they_o do_v not_o in_o another_o connive_v at_o if_o not_o approve_v that_o in_o such_o as_o favour_v their_o party_n which_o they_o do_v count_v &_o inveigh_v against_o as_o a_o most_o heinous_a crime_n deserve_v extermination_n in_o they_o that_o side_n not_o with_o they_o much_o more_o abominable_a be_v it_o that_o they_o shall_v impute_v that_o power_n by_o which_o peace_n be_v keep_v justice_n be_v do_v humane_a society_n be_v preserve_v to_o the_o dragon_n and_o not_o see_v it_o to_o be_v from_o the_o devil_n that_o they_o stir_v up_o hatred_n in_o the_o world_n and_o practice_v murder_v of_o innocent_a man_n yea_o of_o those_o who_o be_v by_o god_n make_v ruler_n over_o they_o who_o they_o shall_v obey_v assist_v and_o defend_v 8._o it_o be_v suppose_v that_o the_o mixture_n of_o civil_a power_n by_o they_o imagine_v make_v they_o who_o otherwise_o have_v be_v the_o ordinance_n of_o god_n to_o be_v the_o ordinance_n of_o hell_n and_o their_o power_n from_o the_o dragon_n though_o promote_a idolatry_n and_o persecute_v christianity_n by_o the_o roman_a ethnic_a emperor_n do_v not_o make_v void_a their_o be_v the_o ordinance_n of_o god_n nor_o the_o duty_n of_o christian_n subjection_n to_o they_o as_o if_o the_o shed_n of_o the_o blood_n of_o the_o saint_n and_o set_v up_o idol_n be_v not_o more_o from_o satan_n and_o more_o inconsistent_a with_o civil_a power_n than_o a_o usurpation_n of_o a_o ecclesiastic_a office_n or_o uzziahs_n presumption_n to_o burn_v incense_n god_n will_v not_o have_v david_n build_v he_o a_o temple_n because_o he_o have_v shed_v blood_n not_o because_o he_o be_v as_o it_o be_v likely_a author_n of_o fetch_v the_o ark_n to_o he_o in_o a_o cart_n &_o he_o and_o all_o israel_n attend_v the_o carry_v of_o it_o play_v before_o the_o lord_n on_o all_o manner_n of_o instrument_n sure_o this_o doctrine_n smell_v rank_a of_o pharisaism_n to_o break_v the_o commandment_n of_o god_n for_o man_n tradition_n to_o disannul_v the_o duty_n of_o subject_n to_o their_o civil_a parent_n because_o of_o some_o suppose_a inordinate_a mixture_n yea_o be_v not_o this_o the_o very_a venom_n of_o antichristian_a papal_n list_v up_o of_o themselves_o above_o all_o that_o be_v call_v god_n not_o only_o to_o excommunicate_v and_o depose_v emperor_n for_o simony_n as_o the_o pope_n term_v it_o because_o they_o give_v bishop_n investiture_n into_o their_o bishopric_n or_o for_o heresy_n or_o favour_v heretic_n in_o not_o destroy_v they_o but_o also_o to_o proclaim_v war_n against_o they_o and_o attempt_v to_o kill_v they_o by_o reason_n of_o mixture_n or_o
like_a manner_n though_o preacher_n call_v to_o that_o office_n may_v in_o a_o fit_a way_n show_v prince_n their_o sin_n and_o declare_v their_o danger_n yet_o in_o no_o sort_n be_v they_o to_o vilify_v their_o authority_n or_o contemn_v their_o person_n nor_o may_v man_n pretend_v the_o imitation_n of_o the_o holy_a prophet_n boldness_n unless_o they_o can_v show_v their_o commission_n and_o be_v endow_v with_o their_o spirit_n and_o power_n nor_o may_v man_n who_o be_v but_o private_a person_n take_v upon_o they_o to_o do_v as_o christ_n do_v when_o he_o drive_v the_o buyer_n and_o seller_n out_o of_o the_o temple_n which_o will_v be_v more_o full_o prove_v by_o a_o five_o argument_n take_v from_o some_o resolution_n or_o determination_n of_o our_o lord_n christ_n which_o condemn_v such_o attempt_n &_o practice_n as_o the_o quinto-monarchians_a doctrine_n animate_v to_o upon_o pretence_n of_o zeal_n for_o christ_n and_o his_o kingdom_n luke_n 9_o 54_o 55_o 56._o when_o christ_n be_v to_o go_v to_o jerusalem_n he_o send_v messenger_n before_o his_o face_n and_o they_o go_v and_o enter_v into_o a_o village_n of_o the_o samaritan_n to_o make_v ready_a for_o he_o and_o they_o do_v not_o receive_v he_o because_o his_o face_n be_v asthough_o he_o will_v go_v to_o jerusalem_n and_o when_o his_o desciple_n james_n and_o john_n see_v this_o they_o say_v lord_n will_v thou_o that_o we_o command_v fire_n to_o come_v down_o from_o heaven_n and_o consume_v they_o even_o as_o elias_n do_v but_o he_o turn_v and_o rebuke_v they_o and_o say_v you_o know_v not_o what_o manner_n of_o spirit_n you_o be_v of_o for_o the_o son_n of_o man_n be_v not_o come_v to_o destroy_v man_n life_n but_o to_o save_v they_o in_o which_o resolution_n our_o saviour_n condemn_v the_o motion_n of_o james_n and_o john_n to_o have_v fire_n come_v down_o from_o heaven_n to_o destroy_v the_o samaritan_n for_o their_o not_o entertain_v of_o christ_n in_o imitation_n of_o elias_n out_o of_o zeal_n for_o christ_n because_o it_o be_v not_o out_o of_o the_o same_o spirit_n that_o elijah_n have_v nor_o agreeable_a to_o the_o end_n of_o christ_n come_n and_o his_o gospel_n which_o be_v not_o to_o destroy_v man_n life_n but_o save_v they_o now_o than_o the_o doctrine_n of_o quinto-monarchians_a which_o urge_v their_o smite_v work_n which_o tend_v to_o the_o destroy_n of_o man_n life_n and_o not_o the_o save_n of_o they_o out_o of_o a_o zeal_n as_o they_o conceive_v for_o christ_n and_o his_o kingdom_n though_o there_o be_v no_o other_o than_o a_o private_a or_o rather_o a_o haughty_a factious_a spirit_n in_o they_o be_v contrary_a to_o christ_n resolution_n and_o therefore_o indeed_o damnable_a and_o antichristian_a nor_o have_v it_o indeed_o in_o christ_n or_o his_o apostle_n doctrine_n or_o example_n any_o warrant_n but_o be_v a_o imitation_n of_o that_o pernicious_a use_n of_o the_o late_a jew_n which_o be_v take_v up_o in_o a_o perverse_a imitation_n of_o phinehas_n his_o act_n numb_a 25._o of_o elias_n 1_o king_n 18._o 40._o 2_o king_n 1._o 10._o and_o some_o other_o out_o of_o zeal_n for_o their_o law_n without_o authority_n to_o destroy_v those_o thing_n and_o person_n which_o they_o judge_v contrary_a thereto_o as_o in_o the_o ston_a of_o stephen_n act._n 7._o st._n paul_n act_n 14._o 19_o etc._n etc._n in_o which_o they_o be_v carry_v furious_o and_o violent_o without_o any_o legal_a judicial_a proceed_n hear_v and_o sentence_n by_o authorize_v judge_n which_o cause_v so_o many_o sedition_n and_o such_o outrage_n as_o at_o last_o provoke_v the_o roman_n to_o make_v a_o most_o horrid_a destruction_n of_o that_o people_n and_o ruin_n of_o that_o state_n to_o which_o the_o quinto-monarchians_a opinion_n and_o practice_n have_v be_v too_o like_a and_o if_o not_o stay_v will_v bring_v the_o like_a effect_n on_o church_n and_o state_n with_o we_o the_o other_o determination_n be_v that_o of_o our_o saviour_n in_o the_o case_n of_o peter_n draw_v his_o sword_n to_o rescue_n christ_n in_o the_o garden_n from_o the_o soldier_n which_o come_v to_o take_v he_o and_o strike_v a_o servant_n of_o the_o high_a priest_n and_o smite_v off_o his_o ear_n which_o our_o saviour_n disallow_v bid_v he_o to_o put_v up_o his_o sword_n again_o into_o his_o place_n for_o all_o they_o that_o take_v the_o sword_n shall_v perish_v with_o the_o sword_n matth._n 26._o 52._o where_o our_o lord_n who_o have_v bid_v they_o buy_v sword_n luke_n 22._o 36._o a_o little_a before_o yet_o forbid_v the_o draw_v of_o it_o and_o smite_v off_o the_o ear_n of_o a_o servant_n of_o the_o high_a priest_n though_o it_o be_v out_o of_o zeal_n for_o he_o it_o be_v against_o a_o officer_n by_o a_o person_n without_o authority_n declare_v the_o evil_a consequence_n which_o will_v follow_v on_o such_o usage_n of_o it_o now_o the_o quinto-monarchians_a smite_v civil_a power_n out_o of_o pretend_a zeal_n for_o christ_n kingdom_n without_o any_o authority_n in_o a_o furious_a heart_n of_o spirit_n be_v much_o more_o apparent_o contrary_a to_o christ_n resolution_n in_o peter_n case_n and_o therefore_o be_v censure_v just_o to_o be_v damnable_a and_o antichristian_a §_o 9_o quinto-monarchians_a doctrine_n of_o smite_v civil_a power_n urge_v to_o resist_v of_o evil_n and_o self-revenging_a forbid_v by_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n and_o to_o most_o horrid_a murder_n and_o great_a confusion_n a_o six_o argument_n against_o the_o doctrine_n of_o smite_v civil_a power_n in_o order_n to_o the_o set_n up_o of_o the_o fifth-monarchy_n be_v take_v from_o those_o text_n of_o scripture_n which_o forbid_v resist_v of_o evil_n and_o avenge_a ourselves_o our_o lord_n christ._n matth._n 5._o 38_o 39_o recite_v out_o of_o the_o law_n of_o moses_n word_n interpret_v as_o allow_v retaliation_n of_o wrong_n with_o the_o like_a as_o those_o who_o threaten_v to_o other_o that_o they_o will_v give_v they_o as_o good_a as_o they_o bring_v he_o on_o the_o contrary_n tell_v his_o disciple_n but_o i_o say_v unto_o you_o resist_v not_o evil_a but_o whosoever_o shall_v smite_v thou_o on_o thy_o right_a cheek_n turn_v to_o he_o the_o other_o also_o which_o be_v not_o to_o be_v understand_v simple_o and_o absolute_o as_o if_o that_o turn_v the_o cheek_n be_v to_o be_v do_v always_o in_o the_o act_n itself_o but_o in_o a_o comparative_a sense_n rather_o than_o make_v a_o brawl_n or_o fight_v take_v further_a injury_n signify_v by_o the_o proverbial_a phrase_n of_o turn_v the_o check_n now_o if_o christian_n be_v forbid_v to_o fight_v when_o they_o be_v injure_v to_o recompense_v evil_a for_o evil_n then_o much_o more_o be_v they_o forbid_v be_v private_a person_n to_o who_o the_o sword_n be_v not_o commit_v of_o their_o own_o accord_n to_o begin_v a_o war_n even_o with_o superior_n and_o to_o proclaim_v it_o in_o order_n to_o procure_v of_o good_a as_o the_o quinto-monarchians_a doctrine_n move_v saint_n to_o likewise_o st._n paul_n rom._n 12._o 17._o recompense_n to_o no_o man_n evil_a for_o evil_n v._n 19_o dear_o belove_v avenge_v not_o yourselves_o but_o rather_o give_v place_n unto_o wrath_n for_o it_o write_v vengeance_n be_v i_o i_o will_v repay_v it_o say_v the_o lord_n v_o 21._o be_v not_o overcome_v of_o evil_a but_o overcome_v evil_a with_o good_a 1_o peter_n 3._o 9_o not_o render_v evil_a for_o evil_n or_o rail_v for_o rail_v but_o contrariwise_o blessing_n know_v that_o you_o be_v thereunto_o call_v that_o you_o shall_v inherit_v a_o blessing_n when_o david_n have_v cut_v off_o saul_n skirt_n his_o heart_n smite_v he_o and_o he_o say_v unto_o his_o man_n the_o lord_n forbid_v that_o i_o shall_v do_v this_o thing_n unto_o my_o master_n the_o lord_n anoint_v to_o stretch_v forth_o my_o hand_n against_o he_o see_v he_o be_v the_o anoint_a of_o the_o lord_n 1_o sam._n 24._o 5_o 6._o the_o lord_n judge_n between_o i_o and_o thou_o and_o the_o lord_n avenge_v i_o of_o thou_o but_o my_o hand_n shall_v not_o be_v upon_o thou_o as_o say_v the_o proverb_n of_o the_o ancient_n wickedness_n proceee_v from_o the_o wicked_a but_o my_o hand_n shall_v not_o be_v upon_o thou_o v_o 12._o 13._o and_o david_n say_v to_o abigail_n bless_a be_v the_o lord_n god_n of_o israel_n which_o send_v thou_o this_o day_n to_o meet_v i_o and_o bless_v be_v thy_o advice_n and_o bless_v be_v thou_o which_o have_v keep_v i_o this_o day_n from_o come_v to_o shed_v blood_n and_o from_o avenge_a myself_o with_o my_o own_o hand_n 1_o sam._n 25._o 32_o 33._o which_o show_n that_o herein_o both_o in_o the_o old_a and_o new_a testament_n holy_a person_n agree_v that_o a_o king_n be_v not_o to_o be_v smite_v though_o in_o hostility_n without_o cause_n by_o any_o of_o his_o subject_n though_o he_o be_v anoint_v to_o be_v king_n after_o he_o that_o revenge_n of_o
injury_n oppression_n or_o persecution_n though_o it_o extend_v to_o the_o slay_v the_o lord_n priest_n &_o to_o a_o endeavour_n to_o slay_v the_o anoint_a captain_n of_o the_o lord_n host_n be_v not_o to_o be_v attempt_v by_o a_o private_a person_n or_o subject_n but_o to_o be_v refer_v to_o the_o lord_n therefore_o the_o doctrine_n of_o quinto-monarchians_a urge_v subject_n and_o private_a person_n to_o smite_v their_o superior_a civil_a power_n and_o to_o avenge_v the_o suppose_a injury_n and_o persecution_n of_o saint_n by_o their_o own_o hand_n be_v contrary_a to_o christ_n his_o apostle_n and_o david_n determination_n in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n and_o consequent_o damnable_a and_o antichristian_a that_o which_o i_o find_v allege_v for_o their_o practice_n be_v in_o these_o word_n the_o banner_n of_o truth_n display_v p._n 59_o all_o the_o blood_n of_o god_n people_n be_v find_v in_o babylon_n for_o they_o i._n e._n her_o civil_a power_n revel_v 16._o 6_o 6._o have_v shed_v the_o blood_n of_o the_o saint_n and_o prophet_n rev._n 17._o 6._o ch_n 18._o 24._o and_o 19_o 1._o jer._n 50._o 14._o now_o therefore_o god_n by_o way_n of_o recompense_n and_o retalliation_n have_v ordain_v that_o the_o saint_n shall_v be_v his_o instrument_n by_o which_o he_o will_v execute_v his_o vengeance_n upon_o the_o power_n of_o the_o world_n who_o be_v all_o of_o they_o murderer_n according_o god_n command_v his_o people_n and_o it_o be_v their_o duty_n to_o obey_v to_o reward_n babylon_n double_a as_o she_o reward_v they_o yea_o and_o double_a unto_o she_o all_o those_o plague_n death_n and_o stripe_n that_o she_o have_v inflict_v on_o you_o revel_v 18._o 6._o and_o they_o shall_v give_v her_o blood_n to_o drink_v and_o she_o shall_v be_v burn_v with_o fire_n for_o strong_a be_v the_o lord_n that_o judge_v she_o wherein_o many_o thing_n be_v take_v as_o grant_v which_o be_v false_a and_o the_o whole_a if_o it_o be_v grant_v will_v be_v insufficient_a to_o acquit_v they_o from_o guilt_n of_o oppose_a christ_n precept_n in_o that_o way_n of_o recompense_n and_o retaliation_n which_o they_o incite_v to_o 1._o that_o all_o the_o power_n of_o the_o world_n be_v murderer_n which_o proposition_n contain_v such_o a_o crimination_n as_o god_n only_o be_v fit_a to_o charge_v they_o with_o if_o it_o be_v true_a since_o he_o only_o know_v all_o the_o power_n of_o the_o world_n and_o be_v privy_a to_o all_o their_o thought_n design_n and_o action_n 2._o that_o the_o civil_a power_n of_o the_o world_n be_v babylon_n or_o her_o civil_a power_n now_o babylon_n be_v term_v the_o great_a which_o shall_v become_v the_o habitation_n of_o devil_n rev._n 18._o 2._o and_o i_o think_v it_o be_v undoubted_a with_o all_o sort_n of_o writer_n and_o intelligent_a person_n that_o babylon_n the_o great_a there_o mean_v be_v the_o same_o with_o the_o woman_n rev._n 17._o 4._o term_v v._n 1._o the_o great_a whore_n upon_o who_o forehead_n be_v a_o name_n write_v mystery_n babylon_n the_o great_a the_o mother_n of_o hariot_n and_o abomination_n of_o the_o earth_n v._n 5._o which_o be_v interpret_v v._n 18._o and_o the_o woman_n which_o thou_o see_v be_v that_o great_a city_n which_o reign_v over_o the_o king_n of_o the_o earth_n which_o common_o those_o who_o be_v acquaint_v with_o the_o history_n of_o the_o time_n in_o which_o st._n john_n receive_v his_o revelation_n even_a papist_n themselves_o do_v take_v to_o be_v rome_n know_v to_o be_v the_o only_a city_n which_o sit_v on_o seven_o mountain_n as_o v_o 9_o be_v express_v and_o reign_v then_o over_o the_o king_n of_o the_o earth_n but_o how_o all_o the_o power_n of_o the_o world_n now_o in_o be_v or_o the_o nation_n of_o europe_n even_o the_o protestant_n shall_v be_v babylon_n or_o her_o civil_a power_n or_o as_o elsewhere_o they_o say_v the_o street_n of_o that_o great_a city_n and_o rome-babylon_n be_v unintelligible_a to_o i_o rome_n itself_o and_o that_o which_o be_v call_v the_o patrimony_n of_o st._n peter_n and_o the_o territory_n in_o italy_n now_o subject_a to_o the_o pope_n may_v be_v term_v babylon_n and_o the_o civil_a power_n therein_o may_v be_v term_v her_o civil_a power_n and_o perhaps_o all_o the_o territory_n subject_a to_o the_o pope_n in_o ecclefiastical_a affair_n may_v be_v mean_v by_o the_o street_n of_o the_o great_a city_n mention_v revel_v 11._o 8._o because_o they_o yield_v subjection_n to_o the_o roman_a pope_n in_o spiritual_n but_o how_o the_o state_n which_o do_v reject_v the_o pope_n power_n in_o temporal_n as_o the_o king_n of_o france_n or_o the_o duke_n and_o senate_n of_o venice_n who_o stand_v out_o against_o pope_n paul_n the_o five_o when_o he_o interdict_v they_o because_o they_o will_v not_o repeal_v their_o law_n or_o release_v their_o prisoner_n though_o ecclesiastic_n shall_v be_v term_v the_o civil_a power_n of_o rome-babylon_n be_v not_o easy_a to_o be_v understand_v much_o less_o how_o the_o king_n of_o england_n denmark_n sweden_n and_o such_o other_o protestant_a state_n nation_n and_o prince_n as_o have_v reject_v the_o pope_n jurisdiction_n and_o authority_n both_o in_o civil_a and_o church_n matter_n and_o impose_v oath_n of_o disclaim_v the_o pope_n supremacy_n in_o spiritual_n and_o their_o authority_n in_o temporal_n through_o their_o dominion_n on_o their_o subject_n shall_v be_v nevertheless_o the_o civil_a power_n of_o babylon_n and_o their_o country_n the_o street_n of_o the_o great_a city_n rome-babylon_n be_v it_o conceivable_a by_o i_o if_o the_o predecessor_n of_o these_o do_v subject_v themselves_o to_o the_o pope_n in_o former_a age_n yet_o they_o be_v not_o therefore_o term_v babylon_n but_o king_n of_o the_o earth_n who_o commit_v fornication_n with_o she_o and_o give_v their_o power_n to_o she_o but_o neither_o of_o these_o can_v be_v say_v of_o those_o prince_n though_o successor_n to_o they_o who_o have_v abandon_v the_o pope_n error_n and_o corruption_n in_o religion_n and_o his_o jurisdiction_n whole_o 3._o it_o be_v suggest_v that_o all_o the_o blood_n of_o god_n people_n be_v find_v in_o babylon_n for_o they_o i._n e._n her_o civil_a power_n rev._n 16._o 6_o 7._o have_v shed_v the_o blood_n of_o the_o saint_n and_o prophet_n rev._n 17._o 6._o ch_n 18._o 24._o and_o 19_o 1._o jer._n 50._o 14._o and_o it_o be_v true_a that_o jer._n 50._o 14._o it_o be_v say_v put_v yourselves_o in_o array_n against_o babylon_n round_o about_o all_o you_o that_o bend_v the_o bow_n shoot_v at_o she_o spare_v no_o arrow_n for_o she_o have_v sin_v against_o the_o lord_n but_o this_o be_v not_o mean_v of_o rome-babylon_n nor_o of_o her_o civil_a power_n but_o of_o babylon_n in_o chaldaea_n many_o thousand_o mile_n distant_a from_o rome_n and_o long_o before_o these_o day_n or_o st._n john_n waste_v and_o yet_o it_o be_v not_o say_v of_o that_o babylon_n that_o it_o shed_v the_o blood_n of_o the_o saint_n and_o prophet_n though_o i_o deny_v not_o she_o be_v charge_v with_o the_o blood_n of_o the_o inhabitant_n of_o zion_n jerusalem-israel_n jer._n 51._o 35._o 49._o it_o be_v rather_o charge_v on_o jerusalem_n by_o christ_n that_o she_o kill_v the_o prophet_n and_o stone_v they_o that_o be_v send_v unto_o she_o that_o upon_o she_o may_v come_v all_o the_o righteous_a blood_n shed_v upon_o the_o earth_n from_o the_o blood_n of_o righteous_a abel_n unto_o the_o blood_n of_o zacharias_n son_n of_o barachias_n who_o you_o say_v christ_n slay_v between_o the_o temple_n and_o the_o altar_n matth._n 23._o 34_o 35._o 37._o it_o be_v say_v rev._n 16._o 4_o 5_o 6._o and_o the_o three_o angel_n pour_v out_o his_o vial_n upon_o the_o river_n and_o fountain_n of_o water_n and_o they_o become_v blood_n and_o i_o hear_v the_o angel_n of_o the_o water_n say_v thou_o be_v righteous_a o_o lord_n which_o waist_n art_n and_o shall_v be_v because_o thou_o have_v judge_v thus_o for_o they_o have_v shed_v the_o blood_n of_o saint_n and_o prophet_n and_o thou_o have_v give_v they_o blood_n to_o drink_v for_o they_o be_v worthy_a and_o it_o be_v most_o probable_a though_o there_o be_v that_o conceive_v the_o river_n and_o fountain_n of_o water_n to_o have_v be_v the_o city_n and_o province_n of_o the_o roman_a empire_n under_o the_o pagan_a emperor_n and_o that_o to_o they_o be_v ascribe_v the_o shed_v of_o the_o blood_n here_o mention_v that_o this_o be_v mean_v of_o the_o papal_a empire_n since_o it_o be_v the_o same_o which_o be_v charge_v on_o the_o woman_n revel_v 17._o 6._o and_o babylon_n rev._n 18._o 24._o who_o must_v be_v different_a from_o rome_n pagan_a by_o reason_n of_o the_o thing_n say_v rev._n 17._o 10_o 11_o 12._o concern_v the_o ten_o king_n which_o have_v then_o receive_v no_o kingdom_n when_o st._n john_n receive_v this_o revelation_n but_o shall_v receive_v power_n as_o
king_n one_o hour_n with_o the_o beast_n &c_n &c_n have_v one_o mind_n &_o give_v their_o power_n and_o strength_n unto_o the_o beast_n which_o can_v not_o be_v understand_v of_o the_o roman_a pagan_a emperor_n who_o receive_v not_o power_n and_o strength_n from_o king_n but_o give_v power_n to_o they_o so_o as_o that_o they_o rule_v under_o they_o by_o their_o power_n and_o therefore_o be_v to_o be_v interpret_v of_o late_a time_n which_o the_o event_n show_v to_o be_v most_o probable_a to_o have_v be_v the_o time_n wherein_o the_o king_n of_o europe_n have_v divide_v the_o roman_a empire_n into_o ten_o kingdom_n do_v yet_o all_o of_o they_o soon_o or_o late_a adhere_v to_o and_o support_v the_o papal_a dominion_n which_o bring_v in_o error_n heresy_n idolatry_n and_o superstition_n which_o have_v and_o yet_o do_v corrupt_v the_o western_a church_n and_o for_o maintenance_n of_o which_o a_o sea_n of_o blood_n have_v be_v shed_v by_o the_o instigation_n of_o friar_n jesuit_n and_o other_o emissary_n of_o rome_n upon_o these_o especial_o brightman_n mede_n and_o some_o other_o conceive_v the_o three_o vial_n to_o be_v pour_v out_o but_o all_o be_v so_o far_o from_o make_v the_o river_n which_o shed_v the_o blood_n of_o the_o saint_n and_o prophet_n to_o who_o blood_n be_v give_v to_o drink_v to_o be_v the_o civil_a power_n that_o brightman_n make_v the_o pour_v out_o of_o this_o vial_n to_o have_v be_v begin_v by_o q._n elizabeth_n and_o the_o parliament_n 1581._o make_v the_o reconcile_n of_o the_o english_a subject_n to_o rome_n a_o capital_a offence_n and_o make_v the_o then_o lord_n treasurer_n william_n cecil_n the_o angel_n of_o the_o river_n by_o reason_n of_o the_o book_n put_v forth_o by_o he_o term_v the_o english_a justice_n wherein_o the_o put_n to_o death_n of_o romish_a emissary_n be_v defend_v which_o be_v also_o the_o opinion_n of_o mede_n though_o he_o add_v also_o the_o memorable_a overthrow_n of_o the_o spaniard_n in_o 1588._o the_o english_a and_o the_o dutch_a who_o robert_n parker_n conceive_v resemble_v by_o the_o angel_n of_o the_o water_n as_o seat_v in_o a_o watery_a country_n by_o sea_n and_o land_n abundant_o pour_v out_o the_o cup_n of_o the_o mighty_a hand_n of_o god_n but_o be_v the_o civil_a power_n the_o shedder_n of_o the_o blood_n rev._n 16._o 6._o and_o 17._o 6._o and_o 18._o 24._o and_o 19_o 2._o yet_o it_o can_v with_o no_o colour_n be_v charge_v on_o those_o civil_a power_n that_o have_v not_o in_o obedience_n to_o the_o pope_n act_v this_o tragedy_n but_o have_v oppose_v it_o and_o avenge_v the_o blood_n of_o the_o saint_n by_o execution_n of_o just_a law_n make_v against_o the_o instigator_n and_o actor_n in_o the_o shed_n of_o the_o blood_n of_o protestant_n i_o can_v take_v upon_o i_o to_o absolve_v the_o civil_a power_n from_o the_o guilt_n of_o shed_v the_o blood_n of_o saint_n and_o prophet_n as_o be_v ignorant_a how_o far_o any_o have_v be_v actor_n therein_o or_o connive_v thereat_o nor_o do_v i_o know_v what_o god_n way_n may_v be_v of_o impute_v the_o bloodshedding_n of_o saint_n and_o martyr_n though_o by_o ancestor_n hundred_o of_o year_n ago_o upon_o the_o posterity_n succeed_v christ_n sentence_n against_o jerusalem_n matth._n 23._o 34_o 35._o 37._o make_v i_o astonish_v and_o to_o say_v as_o david_n ps._n 119._o 120._o my_o flesh_n tremble_v for_o fear_n of_o thou_o and_o i_o be_o afraid_a of_o thy_o judgement_n and_o with_o daniel_n ch_n 9_o 8_o to_o say_v o_o lord_n to_o we_o belong_v confusion_n of_o face_n to_o our_o king_n to_o our_o prince_n and_o to_o our_o father_n because_o we_o sin_v against_o thou_o yet_o hope_v that_o the_o prince_n and_o people_n of_o these_o nation_n have_v be_v humble_v and_o be_v before_o god_n at_o this_o day_n for_o the_o evil_n commit_v by_o their_o forefather_n under_o the_o papacy_n i_o trust_v i_o may_v add_v with_o daniel_n v._n 9_o to_o the_o lord_n our_o god_n belong_v mercy_n and_o forgiveness_n though_o we_o have_v rebel_v against_o he_o sure_o i_o be_o it_o be_v a_o bold_a presumption_n which_o the_o quinto-monarchians_a have_v no_o warrant_n for_o to_o charge_v the_o blood_n of_o martyr_n shed_v long_o before_o their_o time_n on_o the_o civil_a power_n of_o this_o generation_n unless_o they_o be_v privy_a to_o some_o overt_a act_n whereby_o they_o have_v show_v their_o approbation_n of_o it_o and_o their_o readiness_n to_o tread_v in_o the_o same_o step_n 4._o it_o be_v say_v that_o therefore_o god_n by_o way_n of_o recompense_n and_o retaliation_n have_v ordain_v that_o the_o saint_n shall_v be_v his_o instrument_n by_o which_o he_o will_v execute_v his_o vengeance_n upon_o the_o power_n of_o teh_a world_n who_o be_v all_o of_o they_o murderer_n according_o god_fw-we command_n his_o people_n and_o it_o be_v their_o duty_n to_o obey_v to_o reward_n babylon_n double_a as_o she_o reward_v they_o yea_o and_o double_a unto_o she_o with_o all_o those_o plague_n death_n and_o stripe_n that_o she_o have_v inflict_v on_o you_o revel_v 18._o 6._o and_o they_o shall_v give_v her_o blood_n to_o drink_v and_o she_o shall_v be_v burn_v with_o fire_n for_o strong_a be_v the_o lord_n that_o judge_v she_o to_o which_o i_o reply_v 1._o that_o all_o this_o run_v upon_o a_o palpable_a mistake_n that_o the_o power_n of_o the_o world_n or_o the_o civil_a power_n be_v the_o babylon_n which_o be_v to_o be_v reward_v double_a rev._n 18._o 6._o whereas_o it_o be_v manifest_a that_o the_o babylon_n to_o be_v reward_v double_a be_v that_o great_a mighty_a city_n v_o 10._o out_o of_o which_o god_n people_n be_v to_o come_v v_o 4._o which_o be_v to_o be_v utter_o burn_v with_o fire_n though_o the_o inhabitant_n be_v also_o include_v who_o sin_n reach_v up_o to_o heaven_n v_o 5._o glorify_a herself_o v_o 7._o yet_o the_o civil_a power_n of_o the_o world_n can_v be_v mean_v there_o since_o it_o be_v say_v v_o 9_o and_o the_o king_n of_o the_o earth_n who_o have_v commit_v fornication_n and_o live_v delicious_o with_o she_o shall_v bewail_v she_o and_o lament_v for_o she_o when_o they_o shall_v see_v the_o smoke_n of_o her_o burn_a stand_v a_o far_o off_o for_o the_o fear_n of_o her_o torment_n 2._o it_o be_v another_o mistake_n as_o if_o god_n have_v ordain_v that_o the_o saint_n or_o god_n people_n without_o any_o other_o circumscription_n shall_v be_v his_o instrument_n by_o which_o he_o will_v execute_v his_o vengeance_n upon_o babylon_n for_o though_o it_o be_v speak_v to_o the_o people_n of_o god_n revel_v 18._o 5._o to_o reward_v babylon_n as_o she_o reward_v they_o in_o the_o cup_n she_o have_v fill_v fill_v her_o double_a yet_o it_o be_v say_v revel_v 17._o 16._o and_o the_o ten_o horn_n which_o thou_o see_v upon_o the_o beast_n these_o shall_v hate_v the_o whore_n and_o shall_v make_v her_o desolate_a and_o naked_a and_o shall_v eat_v her_o flesh_n and_o burn_v she_o with_o fire_n for_o god_n have_v put_v in_o their_o heart_n to_o fulfil_v his_o will_n and_o to_o agree_v and_o give_v their_o kingdom_n unto_o the_o beast_n until_o the_o word_n of_o god_n shall_v be_v fulfil_v whence_o it_o appear_v that_o it_o be_v so_o far_o from_o truth_n that_o the_o civil_a power_n of_o the_o world_n be_v babylon_n and_o be_v to_o be_v destroy_v in_o order_n to_o babylon_n downfall_n that_o they_o be_v distinct_a from_o babylon_n so_o as_o to_o stand_v a_o far_o off_o and_o lament_v she_o some_o of_o they_o and_o other_o be_v to_o be_v instrument_n of_o burn_v she_o with_o fire_n and_o therefore_o although_o the_o people_n of_o god_n which_o be_v to_o come_v out_o of_o babylon_n those_o who_o be_v with_o the_o lamb_n call_v faithful_a and_o choose_v rev._n 17._o 14_o may_v be_v with_o the_o king_n that_o burn_v she_o and_o be_v escape_v out_o of_o babylon_n may_v be_v instrumental_a to_o its_o destruction_n be_v join_v with_o the_o king_n yet_o it_o do_v not_o appear_v that_o god_n have_v ordain_v the_o saint_n who_o be_v only_o private_a man_n and_o no_o king_n shall_v do_v it_o by_o themselves_o by_o their_o own_o power_n but_o in_o conjunction_n with_o they_o or_o subordination_n to_o they_o and_o therefore_o in_o the_o execute_n of_o vengeance_n on_o babylon_n there_o will_v be_v execution_n by_o the_o civil_a power_n of_o the_o world_n not_o upon_o they_o and_o saint_n be_v bind_v in_o order_n to_o this_o smite_v work_n to_o maintain_v civil_a power_n not_o to_o smite_v they_o or_o separate_v from_o they_o 3._o though_o the_o word_n revel_v 18._o 6._o be_v in_o the_o imperative_a mood_n yet_o it_o do_v not_o thence_o necessary_o follow_v that_o it_o be_v god_n command_n to_o his_o people_n which_o it_o be_v their_o duty_n to_o obey_v or_o else_o they_o sin_n
judge_n and_o yet_o the_o evil_n we_o have_v see_v be_v small_a in_o comparison_n of_o what_o the_o jew_n feel_v by_o the_o faction_n there_o when_o jerusalem_n be_v besiege_v by_o titus_n but_o the_o evil_n which_o will_v come_v on_o the_o world_n by_o the_o insurrection_n of_o the_o quinto-monarchians_a if_o their_o project_n do_v take_v place_n will_v far_o exceed_v they_o their_o design_n be_v a_o universal_a destruction_n of_o they_o that_o oppose_v they_o in_o all_o the_o world_n and_o when_o the_o conscience_n be_v pervert_v there_o be_v no_o stay_n to_o man_n furious_a zeal_n if_o any_o say_v that_o they_o will_v only_o smite_v oppressor_n of_o the_o saint_n i_o reply_v by_o their_o own_o rule_n they_o be_v bind_v to_o separate_z from_o those_o church_n which_o be_v select_a and_o more_o pure_a as_o be_v seem_o refine_v which_o be_v the_o gather_v in_o pastoral_a way_n reduce_v thing_n to_o primitive_a practice_n so_o far_o as_o they_o be_v corrupt_v and_o adulterate_v and_o find_v opposer_n of_o the_o kingly_a office_n of_o jesus_n christ_n in_o and_o over_o the_o whole_a world_n and_o more_o especial_a in_o the_o administration_n of_o this_o part_n or_o dispensation_n of_o that_o kingdom_n to_o wit_n that_o of_o the_o stone_n or_o war_n against_o his_o enemy_n for_o even_o in_o this_o generation_n there_o be_v a_o sort_n of_o people_n and_o those_o we_o hope_v godly_a that_o do_v acknowledge_v &_o wait_v in_o the_o expectation_n of_o the_o late_a yea_o and_o hold_v forth_o the_o personal_a appearance_n of_o our_o lord_n as_o king_n yet_o nevertheless_o oppose_v and_o deny_v and_o quite_o leap_v over_o this_o stone_n and_o its_o work_n thereby_o endeavour_v to_o render_v the_o saint_n useless_a and_o uncapable_a of_o destroy_v babylon_n which_o must_v make_v way_n and_o without_o which_o we_o can_v attain_v to_o the_o peaceable_a and_o more_o glorious_a administration_n of_o this_o kingdom_n by_o remove_v those_o mountain_n hill_n and_o power_n of_o darkness_n which_o do_v oppose_v and_o hinder_v it_o banner_n display_v p._n 75._o there_o be_v no_o church_n or_o at_o leastwise_o very_a few_o of_o the_o pastoral_a way_n in_o these_o nation_n or_o elsewhere_o but_o have_v something_o of_o antichrist_n in_o they_o have_v forsake_v and_o apostatise_v from_o the_o primitive_a and_o first_o love_n and_o have_v and_o do_v in_o many_o principle_n and_o practice_n strike_v hand_n with_o the_o interest_n of_o antichrist_n and_o mystery_n of_o iniquity_n 2_o thes._n 2._o 3_o 4._o p._n 79._o we_o account_v it_o a_o duty_n for_o the_o saint_n to_o separate_v from_o all_o the_o form_n practice_n doctrine_n and_o spirit_n of_o the_o antichrist_n in_o the_o world_n in_o their_o brethren_n in_o the_o church_n etc._n etc._n and_o to_o be_v plain_a we_o account_v he_o and_o that_o spirit_n which_o either_o in_o act_n or_o deed_n wilful_o and_o obstinate_o deny_v the_o smite_v work_n of_o our_o lord_n kingdom_n antichristian_a inasmuch_o as_o that_o such_o will_v always_o have_v christ_n his_o saint_n his_o cause_n in_o and_o on_o the_o earth_n a_o sufferer_n but_o the_o scripture_n clear_o manifest_v the_o contrary_a p._n 81_o 82._o now_o then_o if_o man_n be_v they_o never_o so_o holy_a as_o they_o hope_v a_o sort_n of_o people_n be_v who_o oppose_v deny_v and_o quite_o leap_v over_o the_o stone_n and_o its_o smite_v as_o they_o confess_v there_o be_v no_o church_n or_o very_o few_o of_o the_o pastoral_a way_n in_o these_o nation_n and_o elsewhere_o but_o have_v oppose_v they_o yet_o be_v antichristian_a they_o by_o their_o principle_n be_v to_o smite_v they_o and_o so_o must_v oppress_v saint_n as_o well_o as_o other_o and_o if_o any_o saint_n be_v civil_a power_n ecclesiastical_a ruler_n governor_n in_o corporation_n graduate_n in_o university_n pastor_n in_o church_n as_o no_o doubt_n thousand_o be_v who_o love_v the_o lord_n jesus_n and_o wait_v for_o his_o appear_v and_o kingdom_n yet_o these_o must_v be_v smite_v too_o and_o who_o can_v secure_v in_o such_o confusion_n as_o will_v arise_v upon_o the_o quinto-monarchians_a smite_v work_n any_o man_n yea_o of_o their_o own_o party_n from_o violence_n and_o slaughter_n when_o there_o be_v nothing_o but_o rage_n in_o private_a person_n who_o proceed_n be_v in_o heat_n of_o mad_a zeal_n without_o any_o distinction_n by_o legal_a trial_n and_o just_a judgement_n or_o certain_a rule_n sure_o no_o tyrant_n have_v ever_o do_v more_o mischief_n than_o this_o way_n of_o the_o fifth-monarchy-man_n will_v do_v if_o it_o be_v prosecute_v nor_o be_v any_o doctrine_n more_o hellish_a antichristian_a and_o damnable_a than_o this_o that_o tend_v to_o overthrow_v all_o the_o civil_a power_n law_n doctrine_n form_n degree_n office_n in_o church_n and_o state_n which_o these_o term_n the_o spirit_n of_o antichrist_n in_o the_o world_n and_o if_o it_o be_v suppose_v that_o these_o furious_a zealot_n shall_v accomplish_v their_o design_n after_o the_o mixture_n of_o hypocrite_n and_o the_o rabble_n of_o the_o worst_a &_o most_o foolish_a man_n who_o can_v hope_v there_o will_v be_v any_o peace_n good_a order_n or_o justice_n in_o the_o world_n or_o any_o remainder_n of_o sober_a man_n the_o world_n will_v be_v a_o acheldama_n or_o field_n of_o blood_n which_o they_o impute_v to_o the_o nation_n of_o europe_n even_o the_o protestant_n and_o the_o prevail_a person_n to_o use_v their_o own_o phrase_n blood-monster_n and_o instead_o of_o a_o visible_a kingdom_n of_o christ_n in_o the_o earth_n a_o solitude_n chaos_n tohu_o vebohu_o as_o be_v afore_o the_o first_o creation_n and_o the_o kingdom_n of_o antichrist_n or_o the_o devil_n will_v be_v set_v up_o under_o pretence_n of_o make_v christ_n enemy_n his_o footstool_n what_o law_n order_n or_o rule_n tend_v to_o further_a religion_n or_o righteousness_n can_v any_o expect_v from_o man_n of_o such_o cauterised_a conscience_n as_o not_o to_o discern_v the_o mischievousness_n of_o such_o doctrine_n and_o practice_n as_o these_o have_v vent_v especial_o after_o they_o have_v enure_v themselves_o to_o shed_v of_o blood_n and_o rapine_n with_o extremity_n §_o 11._o the_o 9_o and_o 10_o argument_n against_o the_o smite_v work_n of_o quinto-monarchians_a from_o the_o meekness_n peaceableness_n and_o patience_n of_o saint_n to_o these_o argument_n which_o have_v be_v confirm_v i_o shall_v add_v a_o nine_o take_v from_o the_o opposition_n of_o spirit_n and_o practice_v which_o their_o doctrine_n beget_v to_o the_o precept_n of_o meekness_n and_o peaceablness_n which_o the_o gospel_n require_v of_o christian_n and_o to_o which_o it_o assign_v blessedness_n our_o lord_n christ_n in_o his_o sermon_n on_o the_o mount_n matth._n 5._o 5._o say_v bless_a be_v the_o meek_a for_o they_o shall_v inherit_v the_o earth_n v_o 9_o bless_a be_v the_o peacemaker_n for_o they_o shall_v be_v call_v the_o child_n of_o god_n v._n 22._o he_o forbid_v rash_a anger_n contemptuous_a speech_n and_o opprobrious_a language_n v_o 23_o 24_o 25._o require_v speedy_a endeavour_n of_o reconciliation_n with_o adversary_n nor_o be_v it_o any_o thing_n against_o this_o precept_n of_o christ_n that_o he_o tell_v we_o luke_n 12._o 49._o 51._o i_o be_o come_v to_o send_v fire_n on_o the_o earth_n and_o what_o will_v i_o if_o it_o be_v already_o kindle_v suppose_v you_o that_o i_o be_o come_v to_o give_v peace_n on_o earth_n i_o tell_v you_o nay_o but_o rather_o division_n for_o these_o expression_n do_v not_o show_v his_o approbation_n of_o division_n but_o his_o foresight_n of_o it_o not_o as_o a_o thing_n which_o he_o affect_v or_o as_o a_o thing_n desirable_a of_o itself_o or_o which_o he_o study_v to_o promote_v but_o as_o a_o thing_n which_o he_o know_v be_v unavoidable_a in_o the_o event_n that_o while_o he_o endeavour_v to_o promote_v the_o truth_n of_o the_o gospel_n by_o accident_n division_n will_v follow_v not_o from_o his_o doctrine_n which_o be_v the_o gospel_n of_o peace_n but_o through_o the_o perverseness_n of_o man_n spirit_n who_o will_v oppose_v it_o but_o that_o it_o be_v the_o will_n of_o christ_n that_o all_o christian_a saint_n shall_v be_v meek_a and_o peaceable_a appear_v from_o the_o many_o precept_n enjoin_v they_o in_o the_o apostle_n write_n rom._n 12._o 18._o if_o it_o be_v possible_a as_o much_o as_o lie_v in_o you_o live_v peaceable_o with_o all_o man_n rom._n 14._o 17._o for_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n be_v not_o meat_n and_o drink_n but_o righteousness_n and_o peace_n and_o joy_n in_o the_o holy_a ghost_n v_o 19_o let_v we_o therefore_o follow_v after_o the_o thing_n which_o make_v for_o peace_n gal._n 5._o 19_o 20._o the_o work_n of_o the_o flesh_n be_v hatred_n enmity_n variance_n wrath_n strife_n sedition_n division_n or_o faction_n v_o 22._o 23._o the_o fruit_n of_o the_o spirit_n be_v love_n joy_n peace_n meekness_n heb._n 12._o 14._o follow_v peace_n with_o
hope_n wherein_o those_o who_o they_o believe_v to_o be_v godly_a oppose_v they_o and_o their_o violence_n of_o spirit_n beyond_o all_o sobriety_n in_o move_a person_n so_o earnest_o to_o that_o smite_v work_n in_o this_o age_n upon_o no_o better_a ground_n than_o their_o own_o conjecture_n though_o they_o foresee_v it_o will_v bring_v common_a calamity_n and_o the_o body_n and_o life_n of_o godly_a person_n perish_v by_o reason_n of_o their_o opposition_n to_o this_o stone_n which_o show_v they_o be_v resolve_v to_o smite_v all_o that_o stand_v in_o their_o way_n though_o godly_a as_o it_o fall_v out_o in_o the_o year_n 1660._o mr._n tillinghast_n in_o his_o first_o sermon_n p._n 26._o say_v the_o work_n of_o christ_n kingdom_n the_o glorious_a beginning_n of_o it_o shall_v be_v about_o the_o time_n of_o the_o jew_n come_v in_o and_o p._n 39_o say_v the_o lord_n make_v we_o wait_v on_o he_o for_o his_o own_o time_n and_o yet_o serm._n 3_o give_v sign_n of_o its_o be_v near_o even_o in_o this_o generation_n which_o he_o make_v it_o the_o duty_n of_o saint_n to_o observe_v though_o not_o one_o of_o the_o sign_n be_v from_o any_o revelation_n of_o god_n but_o from_o thing_n which_o may_v happen_v and_o have_v without_o such_o signification_n as_o he_o will_v put_v upon_o they_o i_o omit_v what_o mr._n mede_n in_o his_o letter_n to_o archbishop_a usher_n and_o in_o other_o write_n and_o many_o other_o write_v of_o the_o mystical_a number_n in_o daniel_n and_o in_o the_o revelation_n which_o i_o will_v not_o have_v slight_v so_o as_o to_o give_v 3._o no_o heed_n to_o they_o it_o be_v not_o in_o vain_a that_o the_o holy_a ghost_n have_v deliver_v they_o to_o we_o only_o this_o i_o conceive_v it_o very_o dangerous_a and_o unsafe_a to_o make_v they_o the_o warrant_n or_o motive_n to_o such_o a_o attempt_n as_o the_o smite_v of_o civil_a power_n or_o the_o begin_n of_o any_o war_n against_o the_o know_a rule_n of_o scripture_n and_o law_n of_o civil_a government_n it_o be_v in_o itself_o wicked_a show_v bitter_a furious_a zeal_n without_o the_o wisdom_n from_o above_o and_o likely_a hereafter_o as_o it_o have_v do_v former_o to_o other_o to_o bring_v destruction_n of_o soul_n and_o body_n on_o the_o agent_n and_o much_o misery_n on_o other_o whether_o opponent_n or_o neuter_n §_o 14._o many_o thing_n be_v groundless_a and_o false_a which_o the_o quinto-monarchians_a suppose_n and_o take_v as_o article_n of_o their_o faith_n concern_v the_o fifth-monarchy_n and_o its_o set_n up_o to_o the_o uncertainty_n and_o falsity_n about_o the_o smite_v work_n of_o the_o stone_n whereby_o the_o evil_a of_o their_o attempt_n be_v demonstrate_v i_o shall_v next_o add_v the_o uncertainty_n or_o falsity_n of_o those_o thing_n which_o th●y_v make_v as_o article_n of_o their_o faith_n about_o the_o stone_n become_v a_o mountain_n and_o fill_v the_o whole_a earth_n where_o 1._o they_o show_v their_o inadvertency_n in_o make_v gentile_a saint_n who_o be_v but_o subject_n the_o stone_n mean_v dan._n 3._o 34_o 35._o exclude_v the_o jew_n from_o be_v the_o stone_n in_o the_o beginning_n whereas_o the_o stone_n be_v express_o term_v the_o kingdom_n which_o shall_v stand_v for_o ever_o v._n 44_o 45._o which_o can_v be_v understand_v of_o the_o saint_n who_o be_v subject_a they_o be_v not_o the_o kingdom_n nor_o do_v they_o stand_v for_o ever_o though_o they_o receive_v a_o kingdom_n that_o can_v be_v shake_v heb._n 12._o 28._o but_o the_o stone_n be_v christ_n the_o king_n and_o his_o dominion_n which_o must_v fill_v the_o whole_a earth_n with_o subject_n law_n and_o administration_n of_o rule_n and_o justice_n which_o can_v be_v say_v of_o the_o saint_n gentile_a or_o jewish_n which_o inadvertency_n cause_v they_o to_o speak_v confuse_o p._n 19_o 20._o and_o throughout_o their_o book_n term_v the_o baaner_n of_o truth_n display_v sometime_o term_v the_o stone_n christ_n sometime_o his_o kingdom_n sometime_o the_o gentile_a saint_n sometime_o the_o jew_n join_v to_o the_o gentile_n now_o the_o same_o stone_n which_o smite_v the_o great_a image_n become_v a_o great_a mountain_n and_o fill_v the_o whole_a earth_n but_o this_o be_v not_o true_a of_o the_o gentile_a saint_n or_o jew_n and_o gentile_n join_v together_o they_o become_v not_o a_o great_a mountain_n nor_o fill_v the_o whole_a earth_n therefore_o they_o smite_v not_o the_o image_n 2._o that_o the_o stone_n or_o five_o kingdom_n be_v a_o outward_a visible_a kingdom_n not_o the_o spiritual_a kingdom_n which_o be_v begin_v by_o christ_n in_o the_o day_n of_o his_o flesh_n be_v much_o insist_v on_o as_o the_o chief_a ground_n of_o their_o faith_n and_o hope_n in_o this_o matter_n but_o in_o the_o banner_n of_o truth_n display_v p._n 20._o in_o answer_n to_o the_o question_n what_o this_o stone_n be_v they_o say_v this_o stone_n be_v call_v in_o scripture_n the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n this_o stone_n dan._n 2._o 44_o 45._o matth._n 21._o 43_o 44._o which_o they_o say_v have_v a_o twofold_a dispensation_n i._n e._n 1._o a_o internal_a dispensation_n or_o the_o inward_a kingdom_n which_o be_v the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n in_o the_o heart_n of_o his_o saint_n and_o in_o and_o over_o his_o church_n 2._o a_o external_a dispensation_n 1._o of_o war_n in_o subdue_a and_o conquer_a his_o stubborn_a enemy_n and_o opposer_n in_o the_o world_n whereby_o they_o shall_v be_v compel_v to_o yield_v and_o shall_v become_v subject_n though_o king_n and_o prince_n 2._o of_o peace_n upon_o the_o earth_n in_o and_o over_o the_o whole_a world_n which_o be_v the_o new_a creation_n and_o restitution_n of_o all_o thing_n where_o will_v be_v perfection_n &_o no_o sin_n among_o the_o saint_n immortality_n &_o no_o mortal_a nor_o corruptible_a thing_n where_o death_n shall_v have_v no_o sting_n nor_o grave_a victory_n but_o all_o shall_v be_v swallow_v up_o in_o christ_n fullness_n which_o be_v victory_n and_o for_o this_o they_o cite_v many_o scripture_n in_o the_o margin_n now_o 1._o i_o grant_v that_o the_o stone_n dan._n 2._o 44_o 45._o be_v the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n or_o of_o god_n mat._n 21._o 43_o 44._o 2._o the_o distinction_n of_o the_o internal_a &_o external_a kingdom_n be_v not_o deny_v 3._o nor_o do_v i_o oppose_v the_o double_a dispensation_n of_o this_o kingdom_n 4._o nor_o do_v i_o deny_v the_o description_n of_o either_o dispensation_n but_o 1._o hence_o i_o infer_v that_o the_o stone_n dan._n 2._o 44_o 45._o note_n the_o internal_a kingdom_n or_o the_o dominion_n christ_n have_v by_o the_o preach_n of_o the_o gospel_n term_v the_o gospel_n of_o the_o kingdom_n matth._n 24._o 14._o mean_v matth._n 21._o 43_o 44._o for_o 1._o that_o kingdom_n be_v mean_v there_o and_o no_o other_o which_o be_v to_o be_v take_v from_o the_o jew_n but_o that_o can_v be_v no_o other_o than_o the_o internal_a kingdom_n for_o no_o other_o kingdom_n be_v then_o among_o they_o but_o it_o therefore_o no_o other_o be_v there_o mean_v 2._o that_o kingdom_n be_v there_o mean_v which_o be_v to_o be_v give_v to_o another_o nation_n mean_v the_o gentile_n but_o that_o be_v no_o other_o but_o the_o internal_a 3._o that_o kingdom_n be_v there_o mean_v who_o fruit_n be_v to_o be_v bring_v forth_o by_o the_o nation_n to_o who_o it_o be_v to_o be_v give_v now_o the_o fruit_n of_o the_o kingdom_n be_v express_v to_o be_v righteousness_n peace_n and_o joy_n in_o the_o holy_a ghost_n rom._n 14._o 17._o which_o belong_v to_o the_o internal_a kingdom_n and_o therefore_o no_o other_o there_o mean_v which_o thing_n be_v also_o confirm_v by_o other_o passage_n of_o scripture_n as_o namely_o that_o of_o our_o saviour_n luk._n 17._o 20._o when_o he_o be_v demand_v when_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n shall_v come_v he_o answer_v they_o and_o say_v the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n come_v not_o with_o observation_n or_o with_o outward_a show_n therefore_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n mean_v in_o the_o gospel_n be_v not_o the_o outward_a visible_a kingdom_n which_o the_o quinto-monarchians_a expect_v which_o be_v also_o prove_v from_o v_o 21._o where_o it_o be_v add_v neither_o shall_v they_o say_v lo_o here_o or_o lo_o there_o for_o behold_v the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n be_v within_o you_o or_o among_o you_o which_o can_v be_v no_o other_o than_o the_o kingdom_n set_v up_o by_o the_o preach_n of_o the_o gospel_n to_o which_o be_v to_o be_v add_v christ_n good_a confession_n before_o pontius_n pilate_n john_n 18._o 36._o kingdom_n be_v not_o of_o this_o world_n if_o my_o kingdom_n be_v of_o this_o world_n then_o will_v my_o servant_n fight_v that_o i_o shall_v not_o be_v deliver_v to_o the_o jew_n but_o now_o be_v my_o kingdom_n not_o from_o hence_o wherein_o our_o lord_n christ_n declare_v his_o kingdom_n foretell_v by_o
18_o 19_o will_v have_v christian_n to_o be_v subject_a to_o they_o for_o conscience_n towards_o god_n therefore_o they_o have_v a_o right_a of_o government_n over_o they_o who_o be_v infidel_n even_o by_o god_n appointment_n yea_o the_o fifth-monarchy-man_n themselves_o in_o the_o banner_n display_v p._n 51._o acknowledge_v that_o the_o power_n of_o old_a rome_n the_o a_o bloody_a persecutor_n be_v ordain_v of_o god_n rom._n 13._o 1._o and_o therefore_o even_a infidel_n power_n have_v right_a and_o privilege_n of_o government_n by_o their_o own_o concession_n and_o indeed_o the_o apostle_n determination_n 1_o cor._n 7._o 17_o 18_o 20_o 21_o 22_o 24._o be_v plain_a resolution_n that_o the_o christian_a calling_n do_v neither_o make_v man_n free_a nor_o servant_n nor_o alter_v their_o civil_a relation_n but_o that_o the_o christian_n be_v as_o he_o be_v neither_o better_a nor_o worse_o in_o that_o regard_n 2._o if_o infidel_n be_v usurper_n of_o government_n than_o what_o ever_o sentence_n they_o pass_v it_o be_v unjust_a though_o it_o be_v never_o so_o right_a in_o respect_n of_o the_o cause_n it_o be_v do_v by_o he_o that_o be_v no_o judge_n whereas_o the_o scripture_n make_v even_o the_o infidel_n power_n god_n minister_n revenger_n or_o doer_n of_o right_a unto_o wrath_n unto_o he_o that_o do_v evil_a rom._n 13._o 4._o 3._o if_o they_o be_v usurper_n than_o do_v christ_n ill_o to_o bid_v to_o pay_v tribute_n to_o caesar_n to_o acknowledge_v pilate_n power_n give_v he_o from_o above_o john_n 19_o 11._o paul_n to_o appeal_v to_o caesar_n and_o to_o say_v he_o stand_v before_o caesar_n judgement_n seat_n where_o he_o ought_v to_o be_v judge_v act_v 25._o 10_o 11._o he_o shall_v not_o have_v say_v i_o think_v myself_o happy_a king_n agrippa_n because_o i_o shall_v answer_v for_o myself_o before_o thou_o this_o day_n act_v 26._o 2._o nor_o to_o felix_n act_v 24._o 10._o forasmuch_o as_o i_o know_v that_o thou_o have_v be_v of_o many_o year_n a_o judge_n unto_o this_o nation_n i_o do_v the_o more_o cheerful_o answer_v for_o myself_o he_o shall_v have_v decline_v his_o audience_n or_o sentence_n as_o be_v coram_fw-la non_fw-la judice_fw-la or_o have_v term_v he_o a_o man_n without_o any_o show_n of_o reverence_n or_o respect_n as_o the_o quaker_n be_v wont_a to_o do_v or_o have_v term_v he_o antichristian_a or_o babylon_n as_o the_o quinto-monarchians_a do_v the_o civil_a power_n now_o extant_a in_o a_o word_n no_o honour_n shall_v be_v due_a to_o a_o unblieve_a prince_n though_o st._n peter_n bid_v honour_v the_o king_n 1_o pet._n 3._o 17._o and_o the_o argument_n urge_v before_o sect_n 3_o shall_v be_v evacuate_v 4._o if_o all_o right_a and_o priuledge_n in_o respect_n of_o government_n in_o the_o first_o adam_n be_v lose_v among_o infidel_n so_o as_o that_o all_o infidel_n judge_n be_v usurper_n then_o among_o they_o judge_n be_v not_o unjust_a though_o they_o do_v not_o right_a to_o the_o wrong_a because_o they_o have_v no_o power_n and_o so_o the_o judge_n who_o fear_v not_o god_n nor_o regard_v man_n have_v not_o be_v right_o term_v by_o our_o lord_n christ_n a_o unjust_a judge_n luke_n 18._o 6._o for_o not_o avenge_a the_o widow_n nor_o pharaoh_n or_o abimelech_n just_o punish_v for_o not_o restore_v abraham_n wife_n nor_o any_o just_a war_n between_o the_o king_n of_o sodom_n and_o other_o king_n nor_o have_v ephron_n the_o hittite_n any_o just_a possession_n of_o the_o cave_n abraham_n buy_v nor_o any_o just_a contract_n between_o isaac_n and_o abimelech_n nor_o do_v david_n just_o defend_v toi_fw-fr against_o hadadezer_n nor_o be_v there_o any_o justice_n in_o contract_n or_o commerce_n with_o infidel_n to_o be_v observe_v nor_o they_o capable_a of_o do_v right_a or_o wrong_v if_o there_o be_v no_o just_a legislative_a power_n or_o power_n of_o judicatory_a among_o they_o but_o they_o bear_v the_o sword_n if_o not_o in_o vain_a yet_o unjust_o and_o therefore_o be_v ill_o charge_v by_o st._n paul_n rom._n 1._o 28._o to_o be_v fill_v with_o all_o unrighteousness_n a_o three_o position_n which_o with_o inconsiderate_a man_n take_v as_o be_v in_o show_n agreeable_a with_o scripture_n and_o tend_v to_o christ_n honour_n though_o as_o they_o mean_v and_o use_v it_o it_o be_v both_o false_a and_o pernicious_a be_v that_o jesus_n christ_n be_v the_o only_a lawful_a and_o true_a beget_v heir_n and_o lawful_a king_n and_o potentate_n of_o these_o three_o nation_n and_o of_o all_o the_o nation_n of_o the_o earth_n and_o as_o he_o be_v the_o seed_n of_o abraham_n shall_v possess_v the_o earth_n yea_o and_o the_o very_a gate_n of_o his_o enemy_n and_o that_o the_o sole_a legislative_a power_n of_o the_o nation_n be_v and_o do_v of_o right_o appertain_v and_o belong_v to_o he_o and_o shall_v be_v exercise_v by_o he_o dan._n 7._o 27._o jerem._n 10._o 7._o isai._n 9_o 6_o 7._o gal._n 3._o 16._o etc._n etc._n from_o whence_o it_o have_v be_v usual_a with_o the_o man_n of_o this_o persuasion_n not_o only_o to_o style_n christ_n king_n jesus_n which_o be_v his_o right_n but_o also_o to_o disavow_v any_o other_o king_n but_o king_n jesus_n as_o if_o the_o own_n of_o any_o other_o as_o king_n in_o these_o nation_n be_v indeed_o a_o renounce_v christ_n from_o be_v their_o king_n now_o it_o be_v to_o be_v grant_v 1._o that_o the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n not_o only_o as_o he_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n but_o also_o as_o man_n be_v of_o right_n and_o be_v to_o be_v acknowledge_v the_o prince_n of_o the_o king_n of_o the_o earth_n revel_v 1._o 5._o to_o who_o all_o power_n in_o heaven_n and_o earth_n be_v give_v matth._n 28._o 18._o god_n have_v make_v he_o lord_n and_o christ_n act_v 2._o 36._o he_o be_v lord_n of_o all_o act_v 10._o 36._o nor_o be_v it_o deny_v that_o the_o text_n quote_v do_v belong_v to_o he_o or_o that_o he_o be_v the_o heir_n of_o all_o the_o nation_n of_o the_o earth_n as_o he_o be_v the_o seed_n of_o abraham_n to_o who_o the_o promise_n be_v speak_v yet_o the_o word_n daniel_n 7._o 27._o mention_n his_o kingdom_n not_o till_o the_o judgement_n sit_v and_o they_o shall_v take_v away_o the_o dominion_n of_o the_o little_a horn_n to_o consume_v and_o to_o destroy_v it_o unto_o the_o end_n and_o therefore_o assert_v not_o the_o exercise_n of_o the_o kingdom_n there_o mean_v as_o yet_o the_o word_n jerem._n 10._o 7._o be_v impertinent_o allege_v concern_v christ_n be_v king_n of_o nation_n as_o the_o seed_n of_o abraham_n such_o they_o be_v speak_v only_o of_o the_o divine_a nature_n in_o opposition_n to_o the_o idol_n of_o the_o nation_n the_o word_n isai._n 9_o 6_o 7._o foretold_a christ_n kingdom_n in_o the_o day_n of_o his_o flesh_n which_o christ_n himself_o say_v be_v not_o of_o this_o world_n but_o such_o as_o belong_v to_o he_o as_o the_o child_n bear_v of_o the_o increase_n of_o who_o government_n there_o shall_v be_v no_o end_n the_o word_n gal._n 3._o 16._o be_v true_a of_o christ_n personal_a but_o so_o also_o as_o that_o they_o have_v respect_n to_o all_o believer_n as_o abraham_n seed_n by_o faith_n v_o 7._o 29._o and_o that_o they_o be_v not_o to_o be_v understand_v of_o a_o visible_a monarchy_n acquire_v by_o fight_v of_o which_o the_o quinto-monarchians_a dream_n but_o of_o the_o inheritance_n of_o the_o righteousness_n by_o faith_n which_o shall_v be_v to_o all_o nation_n v._n 28._o in_o which_o respect_n abraham_n also_o be_v say_v to_o be_v the_o heir_n of_o the_o world_n rom._n 4._o 13._o 2._o it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v deny_v that_o all_o king_n ought_v to_o acknowledge_v christ_n their_o superior_a and_o themselves_o to_o be_v subordinate_a to_o he_o and_o that_o those_o who_o will_v not_o acknowledge_v the_o hold_n of_o their_o power_n crown_n and_o sceptre_n under_o this_o great_a monarch_n and_o for_o he_o shall_v be_v deem_v and_o adjudge_v by_o christ_n as_o traitor_n to_o he_o and_o proceed_v against_o according_o by_o he_o according_a to_o his_o law_n and_o the_o threaten_a luke_n 19_o 27._o but_o 1._o this_o will_v be_v do_v by_o he_o in_o such_o way_n as_o he_o think_v good_a he_o have_v not_o make_v any_o saint_n on_o earth_n judge_n over_o king_n whether_o they_o be_v traitor_n to_o christ_n or_o not_o nor_o allow_v they_o to_o proceed_v against_o they_o nor_o have_v he_o assign_v any_o time_n wherein_o he_o will_v proceed_v against_o they_o afore_o the_o great_a day_n of_o judgement_n in_o which_o he_o will_v judge_v the_o saint_n as_o well_o as_o king_n and_o will_v damn_v they_o that_o pretend_v themselves_o saint_n shall_v take_v upon_o they_o christ_n peculiar_a office_n to_o judge_v their_o king_n and_o execute_v judgement_n that_o be_v outrage_n and_o murder_n on_o their_o governor_n to_o who_o christ_n require_v
erroneous_a revolter_n from_o pure_a worship_n true_a doctrine_n and_o true_a christian_a conversation_n in_o duty_n of_o love_n and_o righteousness_n walk_v on_o every_o side_n that_o a_o small_a number_n of_o saint_n in_o profession_n shall_v have_v more_o enemy_n against_o they_o if_o they_o do_v live_v by_o themselves_o on_o earth_n as_o a_o entire_a and_o independent_a commonwealth_n if_o in_o christ_n retinue_n there_o be_v a_o judas_n can_v any_o company_n of_o saint_n secure_v themselves_o from_o hypocritical_a member_n and_o their_o treachery_n sure_o the_o little_a flock_n of_o christ_n be_v more_o behold_v to_o king_n and_o ruler_n and_o law_n and_o government_n though_o with_o some_o rigour_n and_o persecution_n than_o they_o be_v sensible_a of_o or_o thankful_a for_o as_o they_o shall_v be_v we_o have_v see_v how_o unsuccessful_a endeavour_n have_v be_v to_o reform_v church_n to_o rectify_v government_n as_o we_o desire_v how_o like_o tinker_n work_n alteration_n in_o they_o have_v be_v that_o while_o one_o hole_n be_v stop_v two_o be_v make_v how_o many_o various_a form_n of_o government_n have_v be_v devise_v whereof_o one_o have_v oppose_v the_o other_o that_o while_o they_o have_v be_v hammer_v on_o a_o new_a frame_n all_o have_v fall_v to_o piece_n every_o one_o likely_a agree_v about_o what_o they_o will_v not_o have_v few_o about_o what_o they_o will_v have_v and_o therefore_o it_o will_v be_v more_o agreeable_a to_o the_o mind_n of_o god_n for_o christian_n now_o though_o under_o many_o grievance_n and_o pressure_n to_o subject_n themselves_o peaceable_o even_o to_o hard_a ruler_n and_o as_o god_n admonish_v the_o jew_n in_o babylon_n to_o pray_v for_o their_o peace_n for_o in_o their_o peace_n they_o shall_v have_v peace_n and_o to_o seek_v the_o peace_n of_o they_o jer._n 29._o 7._o till_o god_n call_v they_o out_o of_o babylon_n by_o his_o providence_n and_o not_o either_o by_o fly_v from_o they_o as_o enemy_n desert_n their_o station_n wherein_o by_o their_o abide_n they_o may_v perhaps_o through_o their_o good_a conversation_n amend_v they_o or_o by_o their_o patience_n pacify_v they_o or_o by_o revile_v provoke_v they_o or_o by_o conspiracy_n or_o tumult_n incense_v they_o against_o they_o much_o less_o after_o the_o quinto-monarchians_a furious_a manner_n take_v up_o arm_n to_o make_v themselves_o a_o free-state_n and_o lord_n of_o the_o world_n the_o five_o position_n be_v that_o saint_n regain_v the_o right_n and_o privilege_n in_o respect_n of_o government_n in_o the_o second_o adam_n or_o lord_n from_o heaven_n which_o position_n be_v deduce_v out_o of_o the_o former_a but_o be_v false_a and_o pernicious_a for_o 1._o it_o suppose_v that_o the_o right_n and_o privilege_n in_o respect_n of_o government_n be_v lose_v in_o the_o first_o adam_n which_o be_v before_o prove_v false_a 2._o that_o the_o second_o adam_n or_o lord_n from_o heaven_n have_v regain_v they_o whereas_o there_o be_v no_o text_n of_o scripture_n that_o do_v mention_v that_o this_o be_v the_o end_n of_o his_o come_n into_o the_o world_n to_o get_v for_o himself_o or_o for_o his_o disciple_n the_o actual_a regiment_n or_o government_n of_o the_o natition_n of_o the_o world_n in_o a_o outward_a manner_n by_o make_v and_o execute_v law_n about_o civil_a affair_n nor_o be_v this_o ever_o claim_v by_o christ_n or_o his_o apostle_n but_o when_o he_o perceive_v that_o they_o will_v come_v and_o take_v he_o by_o force_n to_o make_v he_o a_o king_n he_o depart_v again_o into_o a_o mountain_n himself_o alone_o john_n 6._o 15._o and_o when_o one_o of_o the_o company_n say_v unto_o he_o master_n speak_v to_o my_o brother_n that_o he_o divide_v the_o inheritance_n with_o i_o he_o say_v unto_o he_o man_n who_o make_v i_o a_o judge_n or_o divider_n over_o you_o luke_n 12._o 13._o 14._o which_o plain_o show_v christ_n refusal_n of_o meddle_v with_o civil_a affair_n though_o it_o be_v but_o by_o speak_v for_o one_o brother_n to_o another_o yea_o and_o his_o disclaim_v any_o civil_a office_n or_o judicature_n as_o not_o belong_v unto_o he_o and_o his_o whole_a estate_n of_o life_n and_o deportment_n in_o the_o day_n of_o his_o flesh_n be_v altogether_o incongruous_a to_o a_o civil_a government_n or_o rule_v nor_o do_v he_o ever_o disturb_v herod_n pilate_n the_o high_a priest_n or_o elder_n of_o the_o jew_n about_o their_o government_n but_o only_o he_o once_o drive_v the_o buyer_n and_o seller_n out_o of_o the_o temple_n by_o special_a instinct_n and_o ride_v on_o a_o ass_n into_o jerusalem_n to_o show_v his_o right_n as_o the_o son_n of_o david_n and_o free_o reprove_v the_o wickedness_n of_o the_o jewish_a ruler_n and_o pharisee_n yet_o still_o require_v those_o that_o be_v heal_v of_o leprosy_n to_o go_v to_o the_o priest_n and_o show_v themselves_o to_o they_o for_o a_o testimony_n to_o they_o that_o he_o be_v not_o against_o the_o observance_n due_a by_o the_o law_n to_o they_o it_o be_v indeed_o say_v rom._n 14._o 9_o that_o to_o this_o end_n christ_n both_o die_v and_o rose_z and_o revive_v that_o he_o may_v be_v lord_n both_o of_o the_o dead_a and_o live_a but_o this_o can_v be_v mean_v in_o respect_n of_o civil_a government_n on_o earth_n and_o the_o right_n and_o privilege_n thereof_o but_o the_o spiritual_a rule_n he_o have_v over_o they_o now_o and_o the_o great_a dominion_n he_o shall_v have_v at_o the_o universal_a judgement_n when_o at_o the_o name_n of_o jesus_n every_o knee_n shall_v bow_v of_o thing_n in_o heaven_n and_o thing_n in_o earth_n and_o thing_n under_o the_o earth_n and_o every_o tongue_n shall_v confess_v that_o jesus_n christ_n be_v lord_n to_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n the_o father_n phil._n 2._o 10._o 11._o yea_o this_o thing_n be_v the_o very_a stumble_a block_n of_o the_o pharisee_n by_o reason_n of_o which_o they_o deny_v his_o kingdom_n and_o his_o be_v the_o messiah_n because_o he_o do_v not_o take_v upon_o he_o civil_a rule_n nor_o by_o human_a force_n subdue_v the_o roman_n as_o david_n the_o philistine_n but_o by_o invisible_a power_n cast_v out_o devil_n heal_v disease_n rebuke_v storm_n and_o multiply_v loaf_n and_o do_v such_o other_o act_n and_o give_v such_o law_n as_o be_v altogether_o unsuitable_a to_o the_o king_n and_o kingdom_n which_o they_o fancy_v and_o expect_v so_o that_o this_o conceit_n of_o christ_n regain_n the_o right_n and_o privilege_n in_o respect_n of_o government_n which_o be_v lose_v in_o the_o first_o adam_n mean_v the_o outward_a visible_a government_n of_o the_o world_n in_o respect_n of_o civil_a affair_n be_v but_o a_o jewish_a opinion_n altogether_o disagree_v with_o christian_a doctrine_n it_o be_v true_a that_o the_o apostle_n mind_n do_v oftentimes_o hanker_v after_o it_o contend_v sundry_a time_n who_o shall_v be_v chief_a among_o they_o and_o the_o two_o brethren_n james_n and_o john_n by_o their_o mother_n ask_v the_o two_o near_a place_n to_o christ_n in_o his_o kingdom_n but_o they_o be_v check_v by_o christ_n express_o tell_v they_o that_o to_o sit_v at_o his_o right_a hand_n or_o his_o left_a be_v not_o he_o to_o give_v but_o for_o who_o it_o be_v prepare_v of_o his_o father_n matth._n 20._o 23._o show_v thereby_o that_o in_o his_o present_a state_n he_o have_v no_o such_o kingdom_n or_o throne_n as_o they_o dream_v of_o nor_o be_v to_o have_v nor_o the_o disposal_n of_o such_o place_n as_o they_o ambitious_o seek_v but_o tell_v they_o of_o their_o suffer_a affliction_n and_o to_o all_o his_o apostle_n say_v you_o know_v that_o the_o prince_n of_o the_o gentile_n exercise_v dominion_n over_o they_o and_o they_o that_o be_v great_a exercise_n authority_n upon_o they_o but_o it_o shall_v not_o be_v so_o among_o you_o v_o 25_o 26._o yea_o when_o they_o will_v know_v who_o shall_v be_v great_a in_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n he_o call_v a_o little_a child_n unto_o he_o and_o set_v he_o in_o the_o midst_n of_o they_o and_o say_v very_o i_o say_v unto_o you_o except_o you_o be_v convert_v and_o become_v as_o little_a child_n you_o shall_v not_o enter_v into_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n whosoever_o therefore_o shall_v humble_v himself_o as_o this_o little_a child_n the_o same_o be_v great_a in_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n matth._n 18._o 1_o 2_o 3_o 4._o declare_v plain_o that_o all_o affect_a government_n and_o superiority_n in_o this_o world_n be_v contrary_a to_o his_o kingdom_n and_o therefore_o the_o monstrous_a ambition_n of_o quinto-monarchians_a of_o get_v into_o their_o hand_n the_o kingdom_n of_o this_o world_n be_v as_o contrary_a to_o christianity_n as_o bitter_a to_o sweet_a darkness_n to_o light_n or_o rather_o indeed_o antichristian_a or_o babylonish_n be_v under_o another_o disguise_n the_o same_o with_o the_o pope_n claim_n of_o universal_a monarchy_n as_o vicar_n of_o christ_n of_o have_v both_o
sword_n spiritual_a and_o temporal_a therein_o lift_v himself_o above_o all_o that_o be_v call_v god_n or_o be_v worship_v 2_o thes._n 2._o 4._o it_o be_v true_a that_o it_o be_v say_v heb._n 1._o 2._o god_n have_v in_o these_o last_o day_n speak_v unto_o we_o by_o his_o son_n who_o he_o have_v appoint_v heir_n of_o all_o thing_n but_o this_o inheritance_n be_v either_o as_o he_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n according_a to_o his_o divine_a nature_n or_o his_o inheritance_n at_o his_o exaltation_n into_o heaven_n in_o that_o sense_n in_o which_o he_o be_v say_v to_o be_v make_v head_n over_o all_o thing_n to_o or_o for_o the_o church_n ephes._n 1._o 22._o which_o be_v to_o be_v understand_v in_o respect_n of_o that_o power_n over_o angel_n and_o man_n so_o far_o as_o concern_v their_o administation_n of_o all_o thing_n for_o the_o welfare_n of_o his_o church_n in_o neither_o of_o which_o be_v the_o saint_n heir_n with_o he_o but_o in_o neither_o of_o these_o sense_n nor_o in_o any_o other_o sense_n or_o place_n of_o scripture_n be_v he_o say_v to_o be_v the_o heir_n of_o the_o world_n so_o as_o that_o he_o shall_v regain_v the_o right_n and_o privilege_n in_o respect_n of_o civil_a government_n lose_v in_o adam_n nor_o where_o abraham_n be_v promise_v to_o be_v heir_n of_o the_o world_n rem_fw-la 4._o 13._o be_v it_o mean_v in_o respect_n of_o the_o civil_a government_n of_o the_o world_n but_o as_o the_o text_n show_v that_o he_o shall_v be_v heir_n of_o the_o world_n that_o be_v the_o blessing_n of_o righteousness_n shall_v be_v to_o jew_n and_o gentile_n throughout_o the_o world_n walk_v in_o the_o step_n of_o his_o exemplary_a faith_n whereby_o they_o become_v his_o seed_n 3._o it_o assert_v that_o saint_n regain_v the_o right_n and_o privilege_n in_o respect_n of_o government_n in_o the_o second_o adam_n or_o lord_n from_o heaven_n which_o be_v a_o false_a and_o a_o most_o arrogant_a presumptuous_a position_n for_o 1._o if_o christ_n have_v not_o regain_v it_o for_o they_o than_o they_o have_v not_o regain_v they_o in_o he_o but_o that_o christ_n have_v not_o regain_v it_o for_o they_o be_v already_o prove_v in_o overthrow_v the_o second_o supposition_n therefore_o saint_n have_v not_o regain_v in_o christ_n the_o right_n and_o privilege_n in_o respect_n of_o government_n civil_a 2._o if_o government_n civil_a be_v not_o lose_v in_o adam_n than_o it_o be_v not_o regain_v in_o christ_n but_o civil_a government_n and_o natural_a be_v not_o lose_v in_o adam_n as_o be_v before_o prove_v in_o this_o section_n therefore_o they_o be_v not_o regain_v in_o christ._n 3._o if_o the_o right_n and_o privilege_n of_o civil_a government_n be_v not_o regain_v in_o christ_n to_o the_o apostle_n than_o they_o be_v not_o regain_v in_o christ_n to_o any_o saint_n for_o none_o have_v more_o regain_v for_o they_o by_o christ_n than_o the_o apostle_n nor_o any_o of_o the_o saint_n excel_v they_o if_o any_o can_v show_v better_a charter_n or_o patent_n from_o christ_n for_o such_o right_n and_o privilege_n than_o the_o apostle_n let_v they_o show_v they_o the_o holy_a scripture_n tell_v we_o that_o god_n have_v set_v in_o the_o church_n first_o apostles_n 1_o cor._n 13._o 28._o they_o be_v in_o the_o foundation_n eph._n 2._o 20_o revel_v 21._o 14._o but_o that_o the_o apostle_n have_v not_o the_o right_n and_o privilege_n in_o respect_n of_o civil_a government_n on_o earth_n afore_o christ_n come_v in_o the_o cloud_n be_v prove_v before_o from_o christ_n word_n matth._n 20._o 25_o 26._o from_o rom._n 13._o 1._o where_o every_o soul_n even_o a_o apostle_n say_v chrysostome_n be_v to_o be_v subject_a to_o the_o high_a power_n from_o st._n paul_n his_o acknowledgement_n and_o example_n of_o subjection_n from_o st._n peter_n precept_n and_o example_n whence_o we_o account_v the_o pope_n of_o rome_n to_o have_v the_o forehead_n of_o and_o impudent_a whore_n when_o they_o claim_v in_o st._n peter_n right_a the_o universal_a monarchy_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n and_o superiority_n above_o emperor_n and_o king_n and_o direct_o or_o indirect_o in_o order_n to_o spiritual_n power_n to_o dispose_v of_o civil_a government_n to_o translate_v the_o empire_n depose_v prince_n give_v away_o kingdom_n command_v emperor_n to_o make_v a_o expedition_n to_o the_o holy_a land_n and_o many_o more_o thing_n as_o if_o they_o be_v his_o right_n as_o successor_n to_o st._n peter_n to_o who_o christ_n promise_v the_o key_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n not_o of_o earth_n if_o this_o claim_n be_v just_o as_o it_o be_v judge_v to_o be_v a_o antichristian_a babylonish_n usurpation_n it_o be_v by_o parity_n of_o reason_n more_o antichristian_a and_o babylonish_n for_o the_o quinto-monarchans_a to_o challenge_v the_o right_n and_o privilege_n in_o respect_n of_o government_n to_o be_v gain_v to_o they_o under_o the_o name_n of_o saint_n when_o they_o can_v show_v no_o such_o donation_n from_o christ_n or_o any_o act_n of_o acquisition_n whereby_o he_o obtain_v it_o for_o they_o or_o any_o conveyance_n of_o it_o to_o they_o or_o any_o saint_n till_o christ_n appear_v the_o apostle_n shall_v sit_v upon_o twelve_o throne_n judge_v the_o twelve_o tribe_n of_o israel_n but_o not_o till_o the_o regeneration_n when_o the_o son_n of_o man_n shall_v sit_v in_o the_o throne_n of_o his_o golory_n matth._n 19_o 28._o term_v his_o kingdom_n luke_n 22._o 30._o the_o saint_n shall_v judge_v the_o world_n but_o not_o till_o the_o time_n come_v they_o shall_v judge_v angel_n 1_o cor._n 6._o 2_o 3._o in_o the_o interim_n their_o condition_n be_v to_o be_v humble_v under_o the_o mighty_a hand_n of_o god_n that_o he_o may_v exalt_v they_o in_o due_a time_n 1_o pet._n 5._o 6._o james_n 4._o 10._o 4._o if_o the_o portion_n of_o the_o saint_n which_o be_v regain_v for_o they_o by_o christ_n be_v in_o spiritual_a blessing_n in_o heavenly_a thing_n and_o no_o where_o in_o temporal_a dominion_n in_o this_o life_n than_o it_o be_v false_a that_o saint_n regain_v the_o right_n and_o privilege_n in_o respect_n of_o government_n in_o the_o second_o adam_n or_o lord_n from_o heaven_n but_o the_o antecedent_n be_v true_a as_o appear_v by_o the_o many_o promise_n to_o they_o which_o assign_v spiritual_a blessing_n to_o they_o as_o their_o portion_n where_o the_o apostle_n paul_n mention_n the_o blessing_n give_v to_o the_o faithful_a in_o christ_n jesus_n he_o say_v ephes_n 1._o 3_o bless_a be_v the_o god_n and_o father_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n who_o have_v bless_v we_o with_o all_o spiritural_a blessing_n in_o heavenly_a place_n or_o thing_n in_o christ_n and_o then_o recite_v they_o without_o mention_n of_o any_o earthly_a power_n or_o preferment_n in_o the_o new_a covenant_n set_v down_o heb._n 8._o 10_o 11_o 12._o spiritual_a grace_n be_v promise_v but_o not_o earthly_a greatness_n and_o riches_n as_o in_o the_o old_a where_o our_o lord_n christ_n matth._n 5._o assign_n blessedness_n to_o holy_a person_n he_o place_v it_o in_o other_o thing_n than_o the_o kingdom_n of_o this_o world_n he_o say_v v_o 5._o bless_a be_v the_o meek_a for_o they_o shall_v inherit_v the_o earth_n but_o no_o where_o the_o dominion_n of_o the_o earth_n the_o apostle_n say_v 1_o tim._n 4._o 8._o bodily_a exercise_n profit_v little_a or_o for_o a_o little_a time_n but_o godliness_n be_v profitable_a for_o all_o thing_n or_o for_o every_o time_n have_v the_o promise_n of_o the_o life_n that_o now_o be_v and_o that_o which_o be_v to_o come_v but_o how_o to_o understand_v this_o our_o saviour_n tell_v we_o mark_v 10._o 29_o 30._o there_o be_v no_o man_n that_o have_v leave_v house_n or_o brethren_n or_o sister_n or_o father_n or_o mother_n or_o wife_n or_o child_n or_o land_n for_o my_o sake_n and_o the_o gospel_n but_o he_o shall_v receive_v a_o hundred_o fold_v now_o in_o this_o time_n house_n and_o brethren_n and_o sister_n and_o mother_n which_o can_v be_v understand_v in_o the_o same_o kind_n but_o in_o that_o which_o be_v equivalent_a &_o child_n and_o land_n with_o persecution_n and_o in_o the_o world_n to_o come_v eternal_a life_n we_o be_v heir_n with_o christ_n but_o it_o be_v if_o so_o be_v that_o we_o suffer_v with_o he_o that_o we_o may_v be_v glorify_v together_o rom._n 8._o 17._o whether_o paul_n or_o apollo_n or_o cephas_n or_o the_o world_n or_o life_n or_o death_n or_o thing_n present_a or_o thing_n to_o come_v all_o be_v you_o and_o you_o be_v christ_n and_o christ_n be_v god_n 1_o cor._n 3._o 23_o 24._o but_o all_o be_v not_o they_o to_o dispose_v they_o or_o to_o rule_v over_o they_o they_o can_v dispose_v of_o life_n or_o death_n thing_n to_o come_v nor_o have_v rule_n over_o paul_n or_o cephas_n but_o god_n do_v order_n and_o dispose_v they_o for_o their_o
if_o saint_n have_v the_o right_n and_o privilege_n in_o respect_n of_o government_n than_o those_o only_o have_v power_n to_o make_v governor_n as_o king_n and_o their_o officer_n who_o make_v saint_n especial_o preacher_n minister_n and_o pastor_n of_o church_n but_o the_o scripture_n make_v this_o no_o part_n of_o a_o minister_n work_v he_o be_v not_o to_o entangle_v himself_o in_o affair_n of_o this_o life_n 2_o tim._n 2._o 4._o this_o be_v never_o intimate_v to_o have_v be_v do_v or_o that_o it_o shall_v be_v do_v they_o be_v say_v to_o be_v of_o god_n his_o minister_n not_o the_o minister_n of_o the_o saint_n or_o pastor_n of_o church_n nor_o do_v ever_o any_o pretend_v it_o to_o be_v the_o right_n of_o church_n officer_n to_o constitute_v king_n and_o civil_a governor_n till_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n usurp_v that_o power_n to_o create_v the_o emperor_n who_o predecessor_n gregory_n the_o great_a acknowledge_v the_o emperor_n mauricius_n to_o be_v his_o lord_n and_o the_o like_a be_v do_v by_o other_o pope_n to_o the_o emperor_n of_o rome_n until_o the_o time_n of_o hildebrand_n name_v gregory_n the_o seven_o who_o becket_n in_o england_n follow_v take_v upon_o he_o to_o annul_v the_o english_a law_n and_o assert_v the_o king_n power_n to_o be_v from_o the_o church_n 17._o if_o the_o right_n and_o privilege_n in_o respect_n of_o government_n be_v the_o saint_n than_o they_o cease_v to_o be_v governor_n when_o they_o cease_v to_o be_v saint_n and_o so_o the_o opinion_n heretofore_o charge_v unjust_o on_o wickleff_n 99_o that_o a_o prelate_n or_o prince_n fall_v into_o mortal_a sin_n shall_v be_v disavow_v which_o be_v even_o by_o romanist_n decry_v then_o may_v those_o that_o have_v power_n to_o excommunicate_v and_o to_o declare_v they_o heretic_n apostate_n depose_v they_o yea_o than_o shall_v prince_n be_v at_o the_o mercy_n not_o only_o of_o pope_n but_o also_o of_o every_o ecclesiastical_a consistory_n yea_o they_o themselves_o shall_v be_v bind_v in_o such_o case_n to_o lay_v down_o their_o government_n and_o ecclesiastical_a ruler_n and_o godly_a person_n to_o abandon_v they_o as_o be_v no_o governor_n of_o right_a because_o no_o saint_n which_o will_v make_v government_n which_o be_v the_o great_a supporter_n of_o human_a society_n to_o be_v the_o weak_a and_o silly_a invention_n among_o man_n not_o like_o the_o ordinance_n of_o god_n by_o who_o king_n reign_n and_o prince_n decree_v justice_n prov._n 8._o 15._o but_o rather_o a_o device_n of_o idiot_n bring_v the_o great_a confusion_n and_o mischief_n incident_a to_o human_a affair_n deter_v infidel_n prince_n to_o become_v christian_n if_o they_o see_v they_o must_v possess_v their_o dominion_n at_o the_o will_n of_o ecclesiastic_n with_o many_o other_o great_a absurdity_n we_o find_v in_o scripture_n king_n have_v depose_v priest_n as_o solomon_n do_v abiathar_n by_o god_n allowance_n but_o no_o where_o priest_n to_o have_v depose_v king_n with_o any_o approbation_n this_o have_v be_v but_o of_o late_a a_o thing_n hatch_v at_o rome_n and_o fetch_v from_o hell_n 17._o if_o the_o saint_n have_v the_o right_n and_o privilege_n in_o respect_n of_o government_n regain_v in_o christ_n then_o be_v temporal_a dominion_n found_v in_o grace_n but_o that_o be_v not_o true_a since_o it_o be_v give_v out_o of_o common_a providence_n for_o the_o good_a of_o human_a society_n not_o out_o of_o special_a love_n to_o the_o saint_n for_o it_o be_v one_o of_o the_o thing_n that_o be_v for_o the_o benefit_n of_o the_o bad_a as_o well_o as_o the_o good_a as_o the_o shine_a of_o the_o sun_n and_o the_o fall_n of_o the_o rain_n matth._n 5._o 45._o and_o therefore_o the_o benefit_n of_o it_o be_v sometime_o deny_v to_o the_o good_a and_o grant_v to_o the_o bad_a so_o that_o in_o these_o thing_n all_o be_v alike_o one_o event_n be_v to_o the_o righteous_a and_o the_o wicked_a eccles._n 9_o 2._o 18._o if_o government_n of_o other_o be_v the_o saint_n right_a god_n will_v not_o have_v make_v saul_n king_n nor_o david_n acknowledge_v he_o king_n over_o israel_n nor_o adjudge_v he_o to_o death_n that_o slay_v he_o nor_o will_v god_n have_v term_v cyrus_n his_o shepherd_n isa._n 44._o 28._o his_o anoint_a isa._n 45._o 1._o nor_o daniel_n have_v say_v to_o nabuchadnezzar_n dan._n 2._o 37._o thou_o o_o king_n be_v a_o king_n of_o king_n for_o the_o god_n of_o heaven_n have_v give_v thou_o a_o kingdom_n power_n and_o strength_n and_o glory_n or_o to_o darius_n o_o king_n live_v for_o ever_o dan._n 6._o 21._o 19_o if_o the_o saint_n have_v regain_v in_o christ_n the_o right_n and_o privilege_n in_o respect_n of_o government_n than_o all_o office_n of_o government_n or_o some_o only_o if_o all_o than_o every_o saint_n be_v of_o right_a a_o king_n and_o so_o a_o king_n by_o inheritance_n succession_n or_o election_n be_v no_o more_o a_o king_n than_o the_o mean_a saint_n yea_o than_o a_o child_n if_o a_o saint_n and_o so_o no_o woe_n when_o the_o king_n be_v a_o child_n contrary_a to_o eccles._n 10._o 16._o then_o one_o person_n have_v no_o more_o right_a to_o a_o office_n than_o another_o which_o will_v introduce_v anarchy_n and_o take_v away_o all_o government_n which_o be_v indeed_o the_o event_n to_o which_o fifth-monarchy-mens_n principle_n and_o act_n tend_v under_o show_n of_o the_o saint_n right_a to_o put_v power_n into_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o most_o violent_a spirit_n whereby_o all_o orderly_a government_n will_v be_v demolish_v and_o tyranny_n of_o a_o few_o with_o the_o common_a robbery_n of_o all_o promote_v if_o some_o only_a have_v right_n to_o some_o office_n and_o privilege_n in_o respect_n of_o government_n who_o shall_v distinguish_v how_o shall_v the_o right_a of_o each_o be_v try_v what_o court_n shall_v there_o be_v to_o decide_v controversy_n of_o this_o kind_n be_v there_o any_o that_o have_v discern_v of_o spirit_n to_o find_v out_o each_o one_o fitness_n be_v there_o any_o oracle_n of_o god_n any_o priest_n by_o urim_n and_o thummim_n who_o can_v declare_v what_o be_v to_o be_v do_v sure_o such_o device_n be_v not_o of_o god_n but_o of_o satan_n which_o tend_v to_o unsettle_v thing_n place_v in_o order_n and_o involve_v man_n in_o inextricable_a difficulty_n not_o to_o be_v avoid_v without_o a_o miracle_n last_o if_o the_o saint_n have_v regain_v right_n and_o privilege_n in_o respect_n of_o government_n in_o christ_n then_o be_v those_o unjust_o debar_v from_o they_o who_o be_v saint_n but_o the_o quinto-monarchians_a in_o their_o banner_n of_o truth_n display_v do_v not_o only_o declare_v the_o saint_n be_v to_o separate_v from_o the_o romish_a universal_a national_a prelatical_a parochial_a presbyterian_a church_n but_o also_o from_o the_o congregational_a church_n though_o they_o hope_v godly_a if_o they_o oppose_v they_o or_o concur_v not_o with_o they_o in_o their_o smite_v work_n though_o they_o be_v brethren_n in_o the_o church_n yet_o they_o account_v he_o and_o that_o spirit_n which_o either_o in_o act_n or_o deed_n wilful_o and_o obstinate_o as_o bless_a be_v the_o almighty_a they_o do_v both_o before_o by_o the_o quinto-monarchians_a own_o confession_n and_o in_o the_o year_n 1660_o deny_v the_o smite_v work_n of_o our_o lord_n kingdom_n as_o they_o pretend_v it_o to_o be_v though_o it_o be_v but_o their_o own_o work_n and_o for_o themselves_o move_v by_o their_o own_o phrenetick_a fury_n or_o intemperate_a blind_a zeal_n antichristian_a term_v they_o formal_o godly_a if_o they_o be_v not_o as_o violent_a as_o themselves_o and_o degrade_n they_o as_o if_o they_o have_v no_o sanctity_n who_o be_v not_o s●●dementate_n as_o themselves_o which_o show_v that_o they_o account_v they_o only_o for_o saint_n that_o be_v of_o their_o spirit_n and_o mind_n and_o appropriate_v the_o right_n and_o privilege_n in_o respect_n of_o government_n to_o those_o of_o their_o party_n exclude_v those_o who_o join_v not_o with_o they_o though_o confess_o godly_a and_o brethren_n for_o who_o they_o can_v deny_v christ_n have_v regain_v as_o much_o as_o for_o themselves_o which_o show_v their_o injustice_n if_o not_o hypocrisy_n and_o overthrow_v their_o assertion_n that_o the_o saint_n as_o saint_n have_v regain_v in_o christ_n the_o right_n and_o privilege_n in_o respect_n of_o government_n since_o they_o will_v have_v no_o saint_n but_o their_o own_o party_n to_o have_v regain_v they_o the_o six_o position_n to_o which_o all_o their_o consultation_n and_o doctrine_n tend_v and_o which_o be_v indeed_o the_o venom_n and_o poison_n of_o all_o their_o tenant_n boil_a up_o to_o the_o height_n be_v that_o the_o kingdom_n and_o power_n in_o these_o nation_n be_v the_o saint_n birthright_n as_o freeman_n of_o the_o commonwealth_n of_o israel_n and_o heir_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n with_o christ_n gal._n 3._o 29._o whence_o it_o be_v that_o
of_o they_o who_o deliver_v themselves_o from_o exile_n by_o voluntary_a embrace_v of_o the_o allowance_n of_o cyrus_n and_o other_o persian_a king_n their_o claim_n also_o of_o the_o kingdom_n and_o power_n in_o these_o nation_n as_o the_o saint_n birthright_n as_o freeman_n of_o the_o commonwealth_n of_o israel_n and_o heir_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n with_o christ_n gal._n 3._o 29._o be_v alike_o ridiculous_a for_o they_o be_v no_o otherwise_o freeman_n of_o the_o commonwealth_n of_o israel_n than_o in_o a_o metaphor_n take_v the_o church_n of_o god_n for_o the_o israel_n of_o god_n and_o church_n member_n freeman_n of_o the_o commonwealth_n but_o this_o belong_v to_o every_o christian_a at_o lest_o who_o be_v real_o such_o in_o the_o whole_a world_n and_o then_o if_o freedom_n shall_v infer_v sovereignty_n they_o shall_v be_v king_n because_o freeman_n which_o be_v a_o mere_a non_fw-la sequitur_fw-la gal._n 3._o 29._o speak_v not_o of_o the_o inheritance_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n but_o of_o the_o promise_n which_o be_v of_o the_o spirit_n v_o 14._o not_o of_o the_o dominion_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n the_o rest_n of_o their_o arguing_n be_v like_o these_o as_o will_v appear_v in_o that_o which_o follow_v §_o 16._o the_o reason_n and_o argument_n of_o fifth-monarchy_n man_n for_o their_o separation_n and_o smite_v civil_a power_n be_v show_v to_o be_v vain_a it_o remain_v now_o that_o i_o consider_v what_o i_o meet_v with_o in_o the_o write_n i_o have_v see_v for_o the_o quinto-monarchians_a separation_n from_o and_o smite_v civil_a power_n and_o act_v in_o the_o behalf_n of_o the_o fifth-monarchy_n or_o visible_a kingdom_n of_o christ_n on_o earth_n as_o they_o term_v it_o and_o the_o saint_n take_v it_o into_o their_o possession_n the_o reason_n of_o their_o separation_n and_o engage_v against_o all_o civil_a power_n be_v in_o the_o banner_n of_o truth_n display_v p._n 84_o 85_o 86_o 87_o 88_o whereof_o the_o first_o be_v this_o because_o the_o five_o kingdom_n which_o be_v jesus_n christ_n and_o the_o saint_n together_o with_o the_o law_n and_o ordinance_n thereof_o be_v to_o take_v place_n of_o the_o roman_a kingdom_n which_o be_v the_o kingdom_n of_o the_o beast_n and_o antichrist_n with_o destruction_n thereto_o together_o with_o all_o the_o law_n and_o ordinance_n thereof_o dan._n 2._o 44._o ch_n 7._o 18._o 26_o 27._o isa._n 2._o 3._o 1_o cor._n 6._o 2._o heb._n 12._o 28._o answ_n this_o be_v grant_v and_o it_o be_v in_o part_n fulfil_v by_o the_o set_n up_o of_o christ_n kingdom_n by_o preach_v the_o gospel_n and_o be_v yet_o to_o be_v fulfil_v at_o christ_n appear_v of_o the_o former_a of_o which_o dan._n 2._o 44._o isai._n 2._o 3._o heb._n 12._o 28._o be_v mean_v of_o the_o late_a daniel_n 7._o 18._o 26_o 27._o 1_o cor._n 6._o 2._o none_o of_o the_o text_n term_v civil_a power_n in_o england_n the_o kingdom_n of_o the_o beast_n and_o antichrist_n or_o the_o roman_a kingdom_n nor_o prove_v the_o five_o kingdom_n be_v to_o be_v set_v up_o by_o separation_n from_o civil_a power_n or_o engage_v against_o they_o which_o be_v to_o be_v prove_v and_o therefore_o if_o that_o which_o be_v say_v to_o be_v a_o undeniable_a truth_n among_o the_o saint_n yet_o since_o those_o saint_n be_v not_o infallible_a and_o other_o saint_n perhaps_o doubt_v of_o it_o as_o judicious_a as_o themselves_o it_o shall_v have_v be_v prove_v and_o also_o their_o inference_n thence_o clear_v unless_o they_o have_v be_v resolve_v to_o deceive_v or_o remain_v deceive_v 2._o because_o the_o civil_a power_n be_v that_o which_o do_v oppose_v the_o righteous_a kingdom_n of_o jesus_n christ_n not_o only_o detain_v his_o right_a interest_n title_n and_o birthright_n of_o inheritance_n from_o he_o as_o much_o as_o in_o they_o lie_v which_o be_v as_o great_a a_o evil_a as_o if_o they_o shall_v effectual_o accomplish_v their_o wicked_a design_n but_o also_o do_v make_v war_n against_o the_o lamb_n christ_n jesus_n and_o the_o saint_n his_o follower_n rev._n 17._o 14._o psal._n 2._o 1_o 2_o 3._o be_v we_o the_o friend_n and_o subject_n of_o jesus_n christ_n why_o then_o be_v we_o find_v the_o friend_n and_o subject_n of_o man_n how_o can_v this_o be_v can_v we_o serve_v christ_n and_o belial_n let_v saint_n therefore_o be_v convince_v of_o this_o namely_o that_o the_o civil_a power_n be_v christ_n enemy_n it_o be_v they_o that_o labour_v to_o prevent_v the_o rise_n and_o break_v forth_o of_o that_o kingdom_n and_o near_o unto_o the_o time_n of_o its_o firm_a establishment_n their_o combination_n will_v be_v very_o high_a &_o great_a i_o see_v the_o beast_n which_o all_o grant_n to_o be_v the_o civil_a or_o at_o leastwise_o the_o civil_a and_o ecclesiastcal_a power_n and_o the_o king_n of_o the_o earth_n and_o their_o army_n gather_v together_o to_o make_v war_n against_o he_o that_o sit_v on_o the_o horse_n and_o against_o his_o army_n rev._n 19_o 19_o if_o so_o than_o it_o consequent_o follow_v that_o it_o be_v the_o saint_n great_a duty_n to_o withdraw_v from_o this_o beast_n the_o king_n of_o the_o earth_n their_o army_n strength_n and_o power_n neither_o be_v they_o upon_o pain_n of_o his_o highness_n great_a displeasure_n to_o maintain_v or_o help_v and_o abet_v or_o assist_v any_o such_o army_n or_o power_n who_o be_v raise_v or_o continue_v to_o make_v war_n against_o he_o lest_o they_o be_v find_v traitor_n secret_o assist_v his_o enemy_n and_o so_o fighter_n against_o his_o glory_n power_n crown_n and_o sceptre_n answer_n this_o be_v a_o very_a deep_a charge_n but_o so_o confuse_a and_o in_o general_n that_o it_o serve_v the_o more_o fit_o to_o hide_v the_o deceit_n of_o the_o accuser_n it_o be_v true_a dolus_fw-la versatur_fw-la in_o generalibus_fw-la there_o be_v guile_n in_o accusation_n which_o be_v only_o in_o general_n tend_v to_o make_v any_o suspect_v or_o accuse_v against_o who_o they_o have_v a_o prejudice_n and_o the_o more_o defficult_a for_o the_o accuse_v to_o defend_v himself_o if_o it_o be_v mean_v of_o the_o popish_a prelate_n and_o prince_n or_o mahometan_a or_o pagan_a it_o be_v not_o deny_v if_o it_o be_v mean_v of_o the_o protestant_n civil_a and_o ecclesiastical_a power_n it_o shall_v be_v show_v which_o of_o they_o and_o in_o what_o fact_n they_o do_v those_o thing_n here_o charge_v on_o they_o perhaps_o they_o that_o be_v accuse_v be_v not_o guilty_a or_o if_o they_o be_v guilty_a yet_o not_o of_o such_o fact_n as_o amount_v to_o what_o be_v here_o impute_v to_o they_o sure_o every_o injurious_a act_n to_o a_o saint_n make_v not_o the_o power_n a_o enemy_n to_o christ_n nor_o every_o unrighteous_a law_n or_o act_n which_o may_v hinder_v the_o progress_n of_o christ_n kingdom_n do_v so_o oppose_v the_o righteous_a kingdom_n of_o christ_n as_o to_o be_v construe_v not_o only_o the_o detain_v of_o his_o right_n interest_n title_n and_o birthright_n of_o inheritance_n from_o he_o but_o also_o make_v war_n against_o the_o lamb_n christ_n jesus_n and_o the_o saint_n his_o follower_n much_o less_o to_o be_v take_v for_o a_o opposition_n to_o christ_n kingdom_n as_o much_o as_o in_o they_o lie_v and_o as_o great_a a_o evil_a as_o if_o they_o shall_v accomplish_v their_o wicked_a design_n possible_o this_o opposition_n which_o they_o accuse_v power_n of_o be_v nothing_o else_o but_o a_o opposition_n to_o the_o wild_a and_o frantic_a act_n of_o fifth-monarchy_n man_n which_o if_o so_o they_o rather_o be_v to_o be_v say_v to_o further_a the_o righteous_a kingdom_n of_o christ_n than_o oppose_v it_o and_o the_o fifth-monarchy_n man_n be_v more_o true_o chargeable_a with_o the_o make_v war_n against_o the_o lamb_n christ_n jesus_n and_o the_o saint_n his_o follower_n possible_o the_o quinto-monarchians_a do_v charge_n power_n with_o these_o thing_n only_o out_o of_o uncertain_a rumour_n and_o report_n yea_o perhaps_o only_o out_o of_o prejudice_n which_o be_v too_o too_o frequent_a though_o it_o be_v but_o a_o devilish_a practice_n in_o many_o that_o be_v repute_v saint_n sure_o these_o consulter_n in_o a_o secret_a conventicle_n where_o the_o power_n can_v be_v hear_v speak_v for_o themselves_o be_v not_o competent_a accuser_n to_o arraign_v and_o judge_n too_o to_o condemn_v their_o superior_n if_o i_o may_v not_o be_v allow_v to_o call_v they_o their_o better_n this_o be_v indeed_o a_o intolerable_a and_o damnable_a presumption_n both_o to_o god_n and_o man._n nor_o be_v there_o any_o thing_n in_o the_o text_n that_o be_v for_o their_o purpose_n the_o former_a revel_v 17._o 14._o be_v mean_v only_o of_o those_o king_n who_o receive_v power_n as_o king_n one_o hour_n with_o the_o beast_n and_o give_v their_o power_n and_o strength_n to_o the_o beast_n which_o sure_o can_v be_v mean_v of_o the_o protestant_a prince_n or_o prelate_n or_o power_n it_o be_v